Selected quad for the lemma: opinion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
opinion_n witness_v world_n write_v 11 3 4.9371 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00728 Of the Church fiue bookes. By Richard Field Doctor of Diuinity and sometimes Deane of Glocester. Field, Richard, 1561-1616.; Field, Nathaniel, 1598 or 9-1666. 1628 (1628) STC 10858; ESTC S121344 1,446,859 942

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o pelagius_n chap._n 27_o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o novatus_fw-la sabellius_n and_o the_o manichee_n the_o six_o heresy_n that_o we_o be_v charge_v with_o be_v that_o of_o novatus_fw-la who_o will_v not_o have_v those_o that_o fall_v in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n reconcile_v and_o receive_v again_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o their_o repentance_n but_o we_o receive_v all_o penitent_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o this_o lie_a slander_n may_v be_v add_v to_o the_o rest_n to_o make_v up_o a_o number_n but_o they_o will_v say_v the_o novatian_n be_v condemn_v for_o deny_v penance_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o therein_o at_o least_o we_o agree_v with_o the_o novatian_n this_o be_v as_o false_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o absolution_n which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n dislike_v by_o novatus_fw-la be_v not_o take_v as_o a_o sacramental_a act_n give_v grace_n &_o remit_v sin_n but_o as_o a_o judicial_a act_n receive_v they_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o have_v be_v former_o put_v from_o they_o peace_n this_o the_o best_a and_o most_o judicious_a of_o the_o schoolman_n confess_v beside_o the_o infinite_a testimony_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v the_o same_o it_o be_v then_o a_o admit_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n not_o itself_o a_o sacrament_n but_o calvin_n say_v that_o the_o speech_n of_o hierome_n that_o poenitentia_fw-la be_v secunda_fw-la tabula_fw-la post_fw-la naufragium_fw-la be_v impious_a and_o can_v be_v excuse_v and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v he_o incline_v to_o the_o novatian_n heresy_n in_o deny_v the_o benefit_n of_o penitency_n to_o distress_a and_o miserable_a sinner_n that_o seek_v it_o 4._o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr mendacio_fw-la ad_fw-la consentium_fw-la make_v it_o a_o disputable_a question_n whether_o a_o man_n that_o usual_o lie_v speak_v truth_n at_o some_o one_o time_n with_o purpose_n to_o make_v man_n think_v it_o like_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o lie_a speech_n wherewith_o they_o be_v well_o acquaint_v may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o lie_v when_o he_o speak_v truth_n because_o he_o intend_v to_o deceive_v and_o do_v deceive_v sure_o if_o this_o man_n shall_v speak_v any_o truth_n i_o fear_v the_o reader_n will_v think_v it_o a_o falsehood_n because_o his_o ordinary_a manner_n be_v seldom_o or_o never_o to_o speak_v any_o truth_n do_v caluine_n say_v the_o speech_n of_o hierome_n be_v impious_a and_o not_o to_o be_v excuse_v as_o he_o report_v he_o do_v sure_o no_o but_o that_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v as_o the_o papist_n understand_v it_o it_o can_v be_v excuse_v for_o they_o conceive_v thereby_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v imply_v which_o hierome_n never_o think_v of_o but_o he_o will_v say_v the_o novatian_n refuse_v to_o have_v those_o that_o they_o baptize_v to_o receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o which_o be_v join_v in_o those_o time_n the_o anoint_v of_o the_o party_n with_o oil_n sure_o so_o they_o do_v but_o so_o do_v not_o we_o for_o we_o t●…inke_v of_o the_o use_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o hierome_n do_v in_o his_o book_n against_o he_o luciferian_o but_o touch_v the_o use_n of_o oil_n though_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n for_o the_o novatian_n to_o except_v much_o against_o it_o yet_o now_o that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o matter_n and_o element_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o consecration_n the_o ground_n whereof_o we_o know_v not_o we_o think_v we_o do_v not_o offend_v in_o omit_v it_o rome_n no_o more_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o omit_v innumerable_a ceremonial_a obsevation_n of_o like_a nature_n that_o be_v in_o use_n in_o those_o time_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o sabellius_n which_o he_o say_v be_v reviue_v by_o servetus_n so_o it_o be_v indeed_o that_o seruetus_fw-la reviue_v in_o our_o time_n the_o damnable_a heresy_n of_o sabellius_n long_o since_o condemn_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o how_o little_a approbation_n he_o find_v among_o we_o the_o just_a and_o honourable_a proceed_n against_o he_o at_o geneva_n will_v witness_v to_o all_o posterity_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n which_o teach_v that_o evil_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n be_v from_o a_o evil_a beginning_n so_o make_v two_o original_a cause_n the_o one_o good_a of_o thing_n good_a the_o other_o evil_n of_o thing_n evil_a it_o be_v true_a that_o this_o be_v the_o damnable_a opinion_n of_o the_o manichee_n but_o will_v the_o shameless_a companion_n charge_v we_o with_o this_o impiety_n i_o think_v he_o dare_v not_o for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o teach_v that_o all_o the_o evil_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v their_o beginning_n and_o do_v proceed_v from_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n which_o while_o he_o use_v ill_a he_o overthrewe_v and_o lose_v both_o himself_o and_o it_o that_o while_o he_o turn_v from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o lesser_a good_a and_o prefer_v the_o creature_n before_o the_o creator_n he_o plunge_v himself_o into_o innumerable_a defect_n misery_n perplexity_n and_o discomfort_n and_o just_o deserve_v that_o god_n from_o who_o thus_o wicked_o he_o depart_v shall_v make_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o former_o he_o appoint_v to_o do_v he_o service_n to_o become_v feeble_a weak_a unfit_a and_o unwilling_a to_o perform_v the_o same_o but_o say_v he_o luther_n affirm_v that_o all_o thing_n fall_v out_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n whence_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n may_v be_v infer_v the_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n be_v easy_a for_o luther_n take_v necessity_n for_o infallibility_n of_o event_n thereby_o mean_v that_o all_o thing_n fall_v out_o infallible_o so_o as_o god_n before_o dispose_v and_o determine_v but_o do_v not_o imagine_v a_o necessity_n of_o coaction_n enforce_v nor_o a_o natural_a and_o inevitable_a necessity_n take_v away_o all_o freedom_n of_o choice_n as_o our_o adversary_n injurious_o impute_v unto_o he_o if_o this_o of_o luther_n fail_v as_o in_o deed_n it_o do_v bellarmine_n have_v another_o proof_n and_o demonstration_n that_o we_o be_v manichee_n for_o that_o calvine_n deny_v man_n to_o have_v freedom_n of_o choice_n in_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o this_o be_v a_o most_o false_a and_o injurious_a imputation_n for_o though_o calvine_n deny_v that_o man_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o therein_o to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o direction_n and_o order_n of_o almighty_a god_n yet_o he_o confess_v that_o adam_n will_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o creation_n be_v free_a not_o only_o from_o sin_n and_o misery_n but_o also_o from_o limitation_n of_o desire_n and_o natural_a necessity_n and_o leave_v to_o her_o own_o choice_n in_o the_o high_a matter_n and_o of_o most_o consequence_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o man_n by_o make_v a_o evil_a choice_n do_v run_v into_o those_o evil_n which_o he_o be_v now_o subject_a unto_o calvin_n then_o be_v not_o worse_a than_o the_o manichee_n as_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o those_o evil_n which_o the_o manichee_n attribute_v to_o a_o evil_a beginning_n as_o bellarmine_n be_v please_v to_o pronounce_v of_o he_o but_o be_v far_a from_o that_o hellish_a conceit_n than_o bellarmine_n be_v from_o hell_n itself_o if_o he_o repent_v he_o not_o of_o these_o his_o wicked_a and_o hellish_a slander_n but_o say_v he_o the_o manichee_n blame_v and_o reprehend_v the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o so_o also_o do_v calvine_n therefore_o calvin_n be_v a_o manichee_n this_o be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v thus_o reason_v with_o bellarmine_n porphyry_n blame_v paul_n as_o a_o arrogant_a man_n for_o reprehend_v peter_n that_o be_v his_o ancient_a and_o before_o he_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o bellarmine_n dili●…eth_v he_o for_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o infidility_n therefore_o bellarmine_n be_v as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o porphyry_n for_o the_o manichee_n think_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v from_o a_o evil_a beginning_n and_o therefore_o exaggerated_a all_o the_o fault_n and_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n that_o then_o li●…ed_v for_o confirmation_n and_o strengthen_n of_o this_o their_o blasphemy_n but_o calvin_n hate_v this_o impiety_n more_o than_o the_o romanist_n who_o imagine_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o christian_n that_o he_o do_v unicâ_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o a_o ill_a consequence_n caluine_n do_v not_o hide_v nor_o excuse_n but_o condemn_v the_o murder_n and_o adultery_n of_o david_n the_o drunkenness_n of_o no_n and_o the_o
the_o two_o and_o twenty_o be_v of_o the_o opinion_n i_o speak_v of_o to_o who_o i_o may_v have_v add_v irenaeus_n bernard_n theophylact_n and_o many_o more_o that_o all_o these_o shall_v be_v charge_v with_o this_o opinion_n or_o with_o this_o folly_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o it_o never_o trouble_v he_o only_o he_o be_v much_o move_v that_o ambrose_n shall_v be_v charge_v with_o any_o such_o thing_n it_o seem_v he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o gregorian_a but_o of_o the_o ambrosian_a church_n in_o that_o he_o be_v careless_a what_o become_v of_o his_o pope_n clement_n and_o john_n so_o all_o be_v well_o with_o ambrose_n 1●…_n he_o be_v torment_v he_o say_v with_o a_o necessary_a suspicion_n rather_o of_o my_o unfaithfulness_n in_o this_o report_n then_o of_o saint_n ambrose_n his_o folly_n in_o this_o matter_n sure_o if_o he_o be_v as_o wise_a as_o he_o be_v wilful_a he_o will_v not_o pass_v his_o censure_n as_o he_o do_v for_o it_o be_v no_o such_o folly_n but_o that_o as_o wise_a a_o man_n as_o s._n ambrose_n may_v fall_v into_o it_o to_o think_v as_o so_o many_o learned_a worthy_a and_o renown_a divine_n do_v and_o therefore_o haereses_fw-la alfonsus_n á_o castro_n have_v charge_v the_o grecian_n and_o armenian_n with_o this_o error_n say_v that_o after_o these_o john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o rise_v up_o and_o embrace_v the_o same_o opinion_n and_o lest_o any_o man_n may_v give_v less_o credit_n to_o his_o word_n he_o say_v he_o will_v report_v the_o word_n of_o pope_n adrian_n who_o write_v thus_o last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v report_v of_o john_n the_o 22_o that_o he_o public_o teach_v declare_v and_o command_v all_o to_o hold_v that_o soul_n though_o purge_v from_o sin_n have_v not_o that_o stole_n which_o be_v the_o clear_a vision_n of_o god_n face_n to_o face_n before_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o bring_v the_o university_n of_o paris_n to_o that_o point_n that_o no_o man_n can_v take_v any_o degree_n in_o divinity_n there_o unless_o first_o he_o do_v swear_v to_o defend_v this_o error_n and_o to_o adhere_v to_o it_o for_o ever_o thus_o far_o pope_n adrian_n beside_o these_o there_o be_v other_o patron_n of_o this_o error_n man_n of_o renown_n and_o famous_a both_o for_o sanctity_n and_o science_n to_o wit_n the_o most_o bless_a martyr_n of_o christ_n irenaeus_n theophylact_n bishop_n of_o bulgaria_n and_o bless_a bernard_n neither_o shall_v any_o man_n marvel_v that_o so_o great_a man_n fall_v into_o so_o pestilent_a a_o error_n see_v as_o bless_a james_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o that_o offend_v not_o in_o word_n be_v a_o perfect_a man_n notwithstanding_o the_o reader_n be_v here_o to_o be_v admonish_v that_o he_o think_v not_o that_o this_o error_n detract_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o holiness_n or_o learning_n of_o so_o great_a man_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o such_o imputation_n of_o folly_n to_o attribute_v this_o opinion_n to_o ambrose_n as_o wise_a m_o higgon_n make_v it_o for_o whereas_o at_o that_o time_n the_o church_n have_v define_v nothing_o touch_v that_o matter_n neither_o have_v it_o ever_o be_v call_v in_o question_n &_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o which_o be_v now_o define_v be_v not_o so_o express_v but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v wrest_v into_o another_o sense_n they_o may_v teach_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o without_o note_n of_o heresy_n especial_o see_v there_o want_v not_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o seem_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o favour_v they_o thus_o far_o alfonsus_n a_o castro_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o master_n higgon_n will_v convince_v i_o that_o i_o have_v wrong_v ambrose_n which_o in_o so_o clamorous_a manner_n he_o undertake_v to_o do_v sure_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o quarrel_n against_o i_o that_o have_v impute_v this_o opinion_n to_o justine_n martyr_n tertullian_n clemens_n romanus_n lactantius_n victorinus_n and_o ambrose_n in_o the_o margin_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o sixtus_n senensis_n who_o yet_o excuse_v ambrose_n from_o this_o error_n but_o the_o silly_a novice_n shall_v know_v that_o i_o do_v not_o say_v sixtus_n senensis_n attribute_v that_o opinion_n to_o ambrose_n and_o that_o i_o put_v not_o his_o name_n in_o the_o margin_n as_o if_o i_o ground_v my_o imputation_n upon_o his_o authority_n for_o if_o i_o will_v have_v do_v so_o i_o can_v have_v muster_v together_o a_o far_o great_a number_n than_o i_o have_v do_v but_o because_o it_o have_v be_v tedious_a to_o have_v set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o all_o those_o i_o mention_v wherein_o they_o express_v their_o opinion_n in_o the_o margin_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o sixtus_n senensis_n who_o report_v their_o word_n at_o large_a according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o time_n wherein_o they_o flourish_v that_o the_o reader_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o page_n may_v see_v what_o they_o say_v without_o turn_v over_o their_o large_a volume_n and_o among_o other_o the_o word_n of_o ambrose_n which_o i_o think_v will_v strong_o persuade_v he_o he_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n which_o i_o impute_v unto_o he_o howsoever_o sixtus_n senensis_n by_o a_o favourable_a construction_n labour_n to_o excuse_v he_o let_v we_o see_v therefore_o if_o ambrose_n will_v not_o witness_v for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v do_v he_o no_o wrong_n but_o true_o report_v his_o opinion_n the_o first_o thing_n i_o impute_v unto_o he_o be_v that_o he_o think_v as_o many_o other_o do_v before_o and_o after_o he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n to_o pass_v upon_o man_n till_o the_o last_o day_n if_o this_o be_v not_o clear_o prove_v out_o of_o ambrose_n his_o own_o word_n let_v the_o reader_n think_v i_o have_v wrong_v he_o in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o cain_n and_o abel_n he_o have_v these_o word_n the_o master_n of_o a_o ship_n when_o he_o have_v bring_v his_o ship_n into_o the_o haven_n scarce_o think_v he_o have_v end_v his_o labour_n before_o he_o begin_v to_o seek_v the_o begin_n of_o a_o new_a sulpenditur_fw-la the_o soul_n be_v loose_v from_o the_o body_n and_o after_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n it_o be_v still_o hold_v in_o suspense_n upon_o the_o uncertainty_n and_o doubtfulness_n of_o the_o future_a judgement_n so_o be_v there_o no_o end_n where_o there_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o end_n the_o second_o thing_n i_o attribute_v to_o ambrose_n be_v that_o he_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v keep_v in_o some_o place_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n so_o that_o they_o come_v not_o into_o heaven_n till_o the_o general_a judgement_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o speak_v himself_o and_o then_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v whether_o he_o say_v not_o all_o that_o i_o impute_v unto_o he_o in_o his_o book_n 10._o the_o bo●…_n mortis_fw-la he_o have_v these_o word_n in_o the_o book_n of_o esdras_n we_o read_v that_o when_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v come_v the_o earth_n shall_v restore_v the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o dust_n shall_v restore_v those_o relic_n and_o remain_v of_o the_o dead_a which_o rest_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o the_o secret_a habitation_n shall_v restore_v the_o soul_n which_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o they_o and_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v be_v reveal_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n from_o hence_o he_o say_v the_o gentile_n take_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o admire_v in_o the_o book_n of_o philosopher_n and_o blame_v they_o that_o they_o mingle_v superfluous_a and_o unprofitable_a thing_n with_o those_o that_o be_v true_a as_o the_o demigration_n of_o soul_n into_o bee_n bird_n and_o the_o like_a fancy_n say_v it_o have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o have_v say_v that_o soul_n deliver_v out_o of_o mortal_a body_n petunt_fw-la haden_n that_o be_v go_v into_o a_o invisible_a place_n which_o place_n in_o latin_a be_v call_v infernus_fw-la and_o far_o add_v that_o the_o scripture_n call_v these_o secret_a habitation_n of_o soul_n storehouse_n here_o we_o see_v ambrose_n say_v there_o be_v certain_a secret_a habitation_n of_o soul_n which_o though_o they_o be_v high_a than_o the_o receptacle_n of_o dead_a body_n yet_o be_v right_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a &_o infernus_fw-la in_o latin_a &_o that_o these_o be_v storehouse_n keep_v those_o soul_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o till_o the_o resurrection_n and_o then_o restore_v they_o if_o m._n higgon_n do_v think_v that_o infernus_fw-la be_v heaven_n than_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v to_o he_o otherwise_o i_o think_v the_o evidence_n of_o this_o place_n can_v be_v avoid_v the_o three_o thing_n i_o impute_v to_o ambrose_n be_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_o receive_v not_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o labour_n till_o the_o general_n judgement_n touch_v which_o point_n
day_n for_o behold_v there_o be_v many_o that_o pervert_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o deny_v the_o say_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n reject_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o civil_a constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n which_o molest_v persecute_v bring_v into_o bondage_n and_o without_o mercy_n torment_n and_o afflict_v even_o unto_o death_n they_o that_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o i_o may_v conclude_v many_o thing_n in_o few_o word_n with_o harl●…ttes_n forehead_n and_o execrable_a boldness_n do_v endeavour_n to_o subvert_v imperial_a and_o regal_a power_n and_o to_o overthrow_v all_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n neither_o be_v these_o young_a man_n or_o unlearned_a but_o they_o be_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n high_a priest_n scribes_z pharisee_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n as_o they_o be_v that_o crucify_a christ_n so_o that_o we_o may_v right_o say_v of_o our_o time_n that_o which_o daniel_n long_o since_o pronounce_v in_o his_o 13_o chapter_n iniquity_n be_v go_v out_o from_o babylon_n from_o the_o elder_n and_o judge_n which_o seem_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v the_o people_n for_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v pillar_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o defend_v the_o truth_n even_o unto_o blood_n do_v cast_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o heresy_n thus_o speak_v he_o in_o his_o time_n of_o the_o corrupt_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n wherein_o so_o damnable_a a_o faction_n prevail_v dangerous_o peru●…ting_v all_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o end_n he_o submit_v all_o his_o write_n to_o the_o judgement_n &_o correction_n of_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n but_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o malignant_a miscreant_n heretic_n schismatickes_n and_o their_o favourer_n chap._n 9_o of_o a_o apostasy_n of_o some_o in_o the_o church_n thus_o than_o we_o think_v with_o câ_fw-la lira_n that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o apostasy_n or_o revolt_n of_o many_o kingdom_n from_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o of_o many_o church_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o there_o have_v be_v a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n not_o for_o that_o all_o at_o any_o time_n do_v forsake_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o for_o that_o many_o fall_v from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o when_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n draw_v on_o iniquity_n shall_v abound_v and_o the_o charity_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v cold_a and_o that_o 1_o timoth._n 4_o in_o the_o last_o time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n attend_v to_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o 2_o timoth._n 3_o in_o the_o last_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v perilous_a time_n man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o themselves_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n reprob●…e_o concern_v the_o faith_n this_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o apostasy_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o answerable_o to_o that_o of_o ●_o nazianzen_n who_o say_v that_o as_o when_o one_o take_v water_n into_o his_o hand_n not_o only_o that_o which_o he_o take_v not_o up_o but_o that_o also_o which_o run_v forth_o and_o find_v passage_n between_o his_o finger_n be_v divide_v athanasii_fw-la and_o separate_v from_o that_o which_o he_o hold_v enclose_v in_o his_o hand_n so_o not_o only_o the_o open_a and_o profess_v enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a verity_n but_o they_o also_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v her_o best_a and_o great_a friend_n be_v sometime_o divide_v one_o from_o another_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n then_o why_o it_o shall_v seem_v so_o strange_a to_o our_o adversary_n that_o our_o divine_n affirm_v there_o have_v be_v a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n not_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o of_o many_o in_o the_o church_n dangerous_o err_v and_o adulterate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n and_o that_o some_o say_v this_o apostasy_n begin_v soon_o some_o late_a for_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o those_o gross_a illusion_n wherewith_o man_n be_v abuse_v in_o these_o latter_a age_n sure_o that_o degree_n of_o apostasy_n do_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n for_o there_o be_v no_o thought_n in_o any_o christian_a man_n live_v six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o they_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o give_v pardon_n 1088._o that_o he_o may_v depose_v prince_n for_o suppose_a heresy_n editi_fw-la that_o the_o sacrament_n not_o receive_v but_o elevate_v gaze_v on_o and_o adore_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 2._o that_o mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n that_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o in_o one_o kind_n and_o sundry_a other_o thing_n of_o like_a nature_n but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o declination_n from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n it_o be_v certain_a it_o begin_v long_o ago_o even_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o error_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a be_v in_o some_o part_n of_o hell_n till_o the_o last_o day_n as_o domini_fw-la tertullian_n finem_fw-la irenaeus_n and_o sundry_a other_o of_o the_o ancient_a do_v imagine_v 345_o &_o that_o they_o see_v not_o god_n nor_o enjoy_v not_o heaven_n happiness_n till_o the_o general_a resurrection_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o father_n that_o all_o catholic_a christian_n how_o wicked_o soever_o they_o live_v yet_o hold_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a christian_a profession_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n after_o great_a torment_n endure_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v be_v save_v as_o it_o be_v by_o fire_n this_o be_v the_o error_n of_o sundry_a of_o the_o ancient_a who_o dare_v not_o say_v as_o origen_n that_o the_o angel_n that_o fall_v shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v restore_v nor_o as_o some_o other_o mollify_a the_o hardness_n of_o origens_n opinion_n that_o all_o man_n whether_o christian_n or_o infidel_n nor_o as_o a_o three_o sort_n that_o all_o christian_n how_o damnable_o soever_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v scribit_fw-la but_o think_v it_o most_o reasonable_a that_o all_o right_n believe_v christian_n shall_v find_v mercy_n whatsoever_o their_o wickedness_n be_v this_o opinion_n be_v so_o general_a in_o videri_fw-la augustine_n time_n that_o very_o fearful_o he_o oppose_v himself_o against_o it_o and_o not_o dare_v whole_o to_o impugn_v that_o which_o he_o find_v to_o have_v so_o great_a and_o reverend_a author_n he_o qualify_v it_o what_o he_o can_v and_o so_o doubt_o broach_v that_o opinion_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o papist_n of_o their_o heresy_n touch_v purgatory_n for_o say_v he_o if_o they_o will_v only_o have_v we_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n live_v wicked_o here_o in_o this_o world_n may_v through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_a find_v some_o mitigation_n of_o their_o pain_n in_o hell_n or_o have_v their_o punishment_n suspend_v and_o differ_v for_o a_o time_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v eternal_a i_o will_v not_o strive_v with_o they_o yea_o say_v he_o it_o may_v be_v that_o man_n for_o some_o light_a sin_n and_o imperfection_n cleave_v to_o they_o while_o they_o be_v here_o may_v find_v pardon_n &_o remission_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o whether_o there_o be_v no_o other_o purge_v but_o in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n he_o profess_v he_o know_v not_o nor_o dare_v not_o pronounce_v amplectebantur_fw-la of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o a_o double_a resurrection_n the_o first_o of_o the_o good_a who_o shall_v live_v in_o all_o happiness_n on_o the_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n and_o another_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n expire_v when_o the_o wicked_a also_o shall_v rise_v and_o go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o the_o good_a into_o everlasting_a life_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o second_o resurrection_n how_o general_o this_o error_n spread_v itself_o in_o the_o true_a church_n they_o that_o have_v but_o look_v into_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n can_v be_v ignorant_a necessari●…_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o infant_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n do_v possess_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o in_o the_o church_n for_o certain_a hundred_o of_o year_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o augustine_n write_v of_o it_o in_o his_o time_n and_o etc._n hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la so_o
that_o other_o who_o augustine_n refute_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o christian_n how_o damnable_o soever_o they_o live_v hold_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_a profession_n may_v and_o shall_v be_v save_v this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n if_o any_o of_o we_o ever_o write_v speak_v or_o think_v any_o such_o thing_n let_v god_n forget_v ever_o to_o do_v good_a unto_o we_o and_o let_v our_o prayer_n be_v reject_v from_o his_o presence_n but_o if_o this_o be_v as_o vile_a a_o slander_n as_o ever_o satanist_n devise_v the_o lord_n reward_v they_o that_o have_v be_v the_o author_n &_o deviser_n of_o it_o according_a to_o their_o work_n but_o let_v we_o see_v do_v he_o make_v no_o show_n of_o proof_n doubtless_o he_o do_v eucharistia_n luther_n say_v he_o pronounce_v that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o have_v access_n unto_o god_n to_o treat_v with_o he_o touch_v reconciliation_n &_o acceptation_n into_o his_o favour_n but_o by_o faith_n that_o god_n regard_v not_o work_n that_o a_o true_a christian_a be_v so_o rich_a in_o faith_n that_o he_o can_v perish_v though_o he_o will_v nor_o how_o wicked_o soever_o he_o live_v unless_o he_o refuse_v and_o cease_v to_o believe_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o these_o place_n of_o luther_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o which_o iustificatio_fw-la illyricus_n have_v fit_o note_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o there_o be_v two_o court_n of_o god_n judgement_n &_o most_o righteous_a proceed_n towards_o the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o one_o he_o call_v forum_n iustificationis_fw-la the_o other_o novae_fw-la obedientiae_fw-la in_o the_o first_o he_o say_v god_n require_v perfect_a righteousness_n full_o answer_v that_o his_o law_n prescribe_v which_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o christ_n no_o way_n apprehend_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o this_o respect_n &_o sit_v in_o this_o court_n of_o exact_a trial_n he_o regard_v no_o work_n virtue_n or_o quality_n find_v nothing_o of_o worth_n or_o worthy_a to_o be_v respect_v but_o look_v to_o our_o faith_n only_o &_o for_o christ_n sake_n only_o at_o the_o sole_a and_o only_a suit_n of_o faith_n forgive_v sin_n &_o impute_v righteousness_n notwithstanding_o because_o he_o never_o say_v to_o any_o sinner_n thy_o sin_n be_v remit_v but_o that_o he_o add_v go_v and_o sin_n no_o more_o &_o that_o upon_o peril_n of_o forfeit_v the_o benefit_n receive_v and_o that_o some_o worse_a thing_n shall_v betide_v unto_o he_o therefore_o there_o be_v another_o court_n wherein_o he_o sit_v &_o give_v commandment_n for_o new_a obedience_n and_o work_n of_o righteousness_n though_o not_o require_v so_o strict_o that_o perfection_n which_o former_o he_o do_v but_o accept_v our_o weak_a endeavour_n &_o study_v of_o well_o do_v and_o in_o this_o sort_n it_o be_v that_o he_o will_v judge_v we_o in_o the_o last_o day_n according_a to_o our_o work_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o that_o though_o faith_n be_v never_o alone_a yet_o in_o procure_v we_o acceptation_n with_o god_n it_o be_v alone_o and_o that_o though_o god_n regard_v none_o of_o our_o virtue_n action_n &_o quality_n as_o be_v of_o any_o worth_n in_o the_o strictness_n of_o his_o judgement_n but_o reject_v they_o as_o unpure_a &_o unclean_a &_o respect_v nothing_o but_o the_o humble_a suit_n &_o petition_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o purpose_n of_o justification_n yet_o when_o we_o be_v justify_v he_o require_v of_o we_o a_o new_a obedience_n judge_v we_o according_a to_o it_o &_o crown_v we_o for_o it_o that_o which_o luther_n add_v that_o a_o man_n can_v perish_v though_o he_o will_v and_o how_o wicked_o soever_o he_o live_v unless_o he_o cease_v to_o believe_v may_v seem_v hard_a at_o the_o first_o sight_n but_o not_o to_o they_o that_o do_v know_v that_o luther_n be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v how_o wicked_o soever_o they_o live_v for_o he_o constant_o teach_v that_o justify_v faith_n can_v remain_v in_o that_o man_n that_o sin_v with_o full_a consent_n nor_o be_v find_v in_o that_o soul_n wherein_o be_v peccata_fw-la vastantia_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la as_o melancthon_n speak_v follow_v augustine_n that_o be_v rage_v roll_a prevail_a lay_v waist_n and_o destroy_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o conscience_n which_o shall_v resist_v against_o evil_a and_o condemn_v it_o this_o be_v all_o than_o that_o luther_n say_v that_o no_o wickedness_n with_o which_o faith_n may_v stand_v can_v hurt_v we_o so_o long_o as_o faith_n continue_v but_o if_o sin_n once_o become_v regnant_a and_o so_o exclude_v faith_n we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o neither_o bellarmine_n nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v we_o see_v then_o how_o just_o we_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o simonian_o eunomian_o and_o the_o like_a monster_n sure_o as_o just_o as_o bellarmine_n may_v be_v charge_v with_o true_a and_o honest_a deal_n in_o this_o imputation_n and_o other_o that_o follow_v chap._n 23._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o florinus_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n false_o impute_v to_o caluine_n and_o other_o the_o ibid._n next_o heresy_n which_o they_o say_v we_o be_v fall_v into_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o florinus_n who_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o author_n of_o sin_n this_o he_o say_v calvin_n luther_n martyr_n and_o sundry_a other_o of_o the_o great_a divine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v defend_v in_o their_o write_n of_o this_o sinful_a wicked_a and_o lie_a report_n we_o be_v sure_a god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n but_o the_o devil_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o full_o accord_v with_o florinus_n but_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o true_o these_o man_n write_v and_o speak_v of_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n i_o will_v only_o positive_o lay_v down_o what_o we_o think_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o the_o adversary_n slander_n will_v be_v sufficient_o refute_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o our_o opinion_n touch_v this_o point_n i_o will_v first_o set_v down_o the_o different_a kind_n of_o sin_n second_o what_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o will_n or_o decree_n touch_v the_o first_o entrance_n thereof_o and_o three_o what_o when_o it_o be_v enter_v sin_n as_o we_o know_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n the_o law_n be_v partly_o affirmative_a require_v partly_o negative_a forbid_v the_o do_v of_o a_o thing_n hence_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o sin_n be_v either_o of_o omission_n or_o commission_n sin_n of_o omission_n be_v the_o not_o do_v of_o that_o the_o creature_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v sin_n of_o commission_n be_v the_o do_v of_o that_o the_o creature_n be_v bind_v not_o to_o do_v the_o not_o do_v of_o that_o the_o creature_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o will_n and_o decree_v four_o way_n first_o by_o effectual_a oppose_v against_o the_o do_n of_o it_o &_o in_o this_o sort_n it_o be_v impious_a to_o think_v that_o god_n decree_v the_o omission_n or_o not_o do_v of_o that_o the_o creature_n stand_v bind_v to_o do_v second_o by_o discourage_v and_o dissuade_v from_o the_o do_n of_o it_o which_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a and_o impious_a than_o the_o former_a three_o by_o denial_n of_o that_o grace_n concurrence_n and_o assistance_n without_o which_o it_o can_v be_v do_v this_o can_v be_v imagine_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o state_n of_o man_n first_o creation_n but_o we_o must_v make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o that_o do_v attribute_v any_o such_o thing_n unto_o god_n but_o contrariwise_o gratia_fw-la calvin_n who_o bellarmine_n seem_v most_o to_o challenge_n note_v fit_o to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o augustine_n that_o god_n give_v adam_n posse_fw-la si_fw-la vellet_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la velle_fw-la quod_fw-la potuit_fw-la power_n to_o stand_v and_o continue_v in_o his_o uprightness_n if_o he_o will_v though_o he_o do_v not_o inseparable_o hold_v he_o to_o it_o but_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o own_o choice_n whence_o follow_v that_o evil_n we_o now_o complain_v of_o four_o by_o denial_n of_o that_o grace_n assistance_n and_o concurrence_n without_o which_o he_o see_v the_o creature_n will_v not_o be_v move_v nor_o win_v to_o do_v it_o though_o it_o have_v other_o more_o than_o sufficient_a grace_n motive_n and_o encouragement_n to_o induce_v it_o thereunto_o in_o this_o four_o sense_n many_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o god_n negative_o or_o privative_o decree_v the_o sin_n of_o omission_n or_o the_o not_o do_v of_o that_o the_o creature_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v in_o that_o he_o decree_v the_o denial_n of_o
that_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n we_o shall_v believe_v so_o shameless_a a_o lie_n for_o augustine_n which_o be_v before_o this_o persian_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la libro_fw-la primo_fw-la capite_fw-la tricesimo_fw-la quarto_fw-la have_v the_o same_o heresy_n as_o it_o please_v these_o heretic_n to_o call_v it_o nolite_fw-la inquit_fw-la consectari_fw-la turbas_fw-la imperitorum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o ipsà_fw-la verâ_fw-la religione_fw-la superstitiosi_fw-la sunt_fw-la novi_fw-la multos_fw-la esse_fw-la sepulchrorum_fw-la &_o picturarum_fw-la adoratores_fw-la quos_fw-la mores_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la condemnat_fw-la &_o quotidiè_fw-la corrigere_fw-la studet_fw-la and_o collocatum_fw-la gregory_n after_o the_o time_n of_o this_o suppose_a persian_a do_v condemn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o 14._o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n likewise_o after_o his_o time_n as_o appear_v by_o hincmarus_n and_o other_o beside_o if_o nicephorus_n follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o by_o that_o adoration_n of_o image_n which_o he_o approve_v but_o the_o embrace_v kiss_v and_o reverend_a use_v of_o they_o like_v to_o the_o honour_n we_o do_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n not_o that_o religious_a worship_n which_o consist_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o papist_n yield_v to_o their_o idol_n and_o so_o there_o be_v as_o great_a difference_n of_o judgement_n between_o he_o and_o bellarmine_n as_o between_o he_o and_o us._n etc._n that_o which_o bellarmine_n add_v against_o caluine_n and_o other_o touch_v the_o time_n that_o image_n be_v first_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n if_o this_o place_n do_v require_v the_o examination_n of_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v he_o as_o notable_a a_o trifler_n therein_o as_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n chap._n 37_o of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o lampetian_o touch_v vow_n the_o error_n of_o the_o lampetian_o be_v as_o alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n suppose_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o vow_n and_o by_o vow_v to_o lay_v a_o necessity_n upon_o themselves_o of_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o free_o and_o without_o any_o such_o tie_n may_v much_o better_o be_v perform_v if_o they_o dislike_v simple_o all_o vow_v we_o do_v not_o approve_v their_o opinion_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o kemnisius_n zanchius_n and_o other_o have_v write_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v unjust_o say_v to_o favour_v their_o error_n that_o which_o bellarmine_n add_v for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o this_o his_o unjust_a imputation_n be_v a_o mere_a calumniation_n for_o luther_n do_v not_o say_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v vow_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n as_o long_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v and_o then_o to_o be_v free_a again_o when_o he_o shall_v dislike_v that_o which_o before_o he_o resolve_v on_o but_o that_o all_o vow_n shall_v be_v make_v with_o limitation_n vow_v to_o be_v so_o far_o perform_v as_o humane_a frailty_n will_v permit_v &_o that_o it_o be_v better_a after_o a_o vow_n make_v to_o break_v it_o &_o to_o descend_v to_o the_o do_v of_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a &_o good_a though_o not_o carry_v so_o great_a show_n of_o perfection_n as_o that_o which_o by_o vow_n be_v promise_v than_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o keep_v it_o to_o live_v in_o all_o dissolute_a wickedness_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o popish_a votary_n be_v dissolve_v whereupon_o the_o father_n be_v clear_a that_o marriage_n after_o a_o vow_n make_v of_o single_a life_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v than_o continue_v single_a to_o live_v lewd_o and_o wanton_o chap._n 38._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o certain_a touch_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n communicate_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o last_o heresy_n may_v well_o have_v be_v omit_v for_o those_o heretic_n condemn_v by_o inventionem_fw-la theodoret_n ignatius_n and_o other_o deny_v the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o thereupon_o condemn_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o impugn_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n as_o bellarmine_n idle_o fanci_v that_o be_v reprove_v in_o they_o but_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o all_o true_a christian_n do_v know_v to_o be_v mystical_o communicate_v to_o they_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o their_o unspeakable_a comfort_n how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o these_o man_n see_v we_o neither_o deny_v the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n nor_o make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o naked_a figure_n or_o similitude_n only_o but_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o earthly_a and_o the_o other_o heavenly_a and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o communicate_v to_o we_o though_o neither_o capernaitical_o to_o be_v tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n nor_o popish_o to_o be_v swallow_v and_o carry_v down_o into_o the_o stomach_n and_o belly_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o fond_o this_o cardinal_n heretic_n have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v we_o heretic_n and_o to_o hold_v the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n of_o those_o curse_a arch-heretike_n who_o frenzy_n we_o condemn_v much_o more_o than_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v so_o that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o demonstrate_v either_o our_o consent_n with_o condemn_a heretic_n that_o be_v of_o old_a or_o their_o consent_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o consequent_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o profession_n that_o contrary_o all_o that_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o partiality_n may_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o confuse_a mixture_n of_o error_n and_o all_o that_o they_o write_v against_o we_o nothing_o but_o mere_a calumniation_n &_o slander_n chap._n 39_o of_o succession_n and_o the_o exception_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o suppose_a want_n of_o it_o thus_o then_o have_v take_v a_o view_n of_o whatsoever_o they_o can_v or_o do_v allege_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o first_o note_n of_o the_o church_n assign_v by_o they_o 5._o let_v we_o come_v unto_o the_o second_o which_o be_v succession_n and_o see_v if_o they_o have_v any_o better_a success_n in_o it_o than_o in_o the_o former_a in_o what_o sense_n succession_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o have_v show_v already_o let_v we_o therefore_o see_v how_o and_o what_o our_o adversary_n conclude_v from_o thence_o against_o we_o or_o for_o themselves_o by_o this_o note_n say_v they_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n luciferianos_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la say_v hierome_n against_o the_o luciferian_o it_o can_v be_v no_o church_n that_o have_v no_o ministry_n and_o cyprian_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o plebs_fw-la episcopo_fw-la adunata_fw-la thus_o therefore_o from_o these_o authority_n 10._o they_o reason_v where_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n there_o be_v no_o church_n but_o among_o the_o protestant_n there_o be_v no_o ministry_n therefore_o no_o church_n the_o minor_a proposition_n or_o assumption_n of_o this_o argument_n we_o deny_v which_o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o this_o sort_n there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_n to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n among_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o no_o ministry_n the_o defect_n they_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o call_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v two_o fold_n first_o for_o that_o they_o that_o ordain_v they_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o alteration_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n so_o to_o do_v second_o for_o that_o no_o man_n may_v be_v ordain_v but_o into_o a_o void_a place_n either_o wherein_o there_o never_o be_v any_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n before_o as_o in_o church_n in_o their_o first_o foundation_n or_o wherein_o there_o have_v be_v their_o place_n be_v now_o void_a by_o the_o death_n deprivation_n or_o voluntary_a relinquishment_n of_o they_o that_o possess_v it_o before_o that_o so_o they_o who_o be_v new_o elect_v and_o ordain_v may_v succeed_v into_o the_o void_a room_n of_o such_o as_o go_v before_o they_o and_o not_o intrude_v upon_o their_o charge_n whereunto_o they_o be_v still_o just_o entitle_v our_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n be_v ordain_v and_o place_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v bishop_n already_o in_o actual_a possession_n these_o be_v the_o defect_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o call_n of_o our_o bishop_n &_o minister_n let_v
save_v though_o the_o assertion_n of_o some_o man_n be_v damnable_a now_o it_o be_v clean_o contrary_a touch_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o the_o general_a &_o main_a doctrine_n agree_v upon_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v most_o common_o conceive_v be_v damnable_a but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n some_o of_o a_o better_a spirit_n and_o have_v in_o themselves_o particular_o a_o better_a conceit_n of_o thing_n than_o general_o be_v hold_v former_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o have_v in_o it_o a_o heretical_a faction_n now_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v heretical_a &_o some_o certain_a only_a be_v find_v in_o it_o in_o such_o degree_n of_o orthodoxy_n as_o that_o we_o may_v well_o hope_v of_o their_o salvation_n thus_o then_o this_o great_a objection_n take_v from_o our_o own_o confession_n be_v easy_o answer_v chap._n 48._o of_o miracle_n confirm_v the_o roman_a faith_n the_o 11._o next_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n own_o testimony_n which_o he_o give_v of_o the_o truth_n &_o sanctity_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o profession_n it_o hold_v this_o doubtless_o be_v the_o most_o absolute_a &_o excellent_a note_n of_o all_o other_o for_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o profession_n and_o that_o the_o true_a profession_n which_o god_n that_o neither_o himself_o can_v be_v deceive_v nor_o deceive_v other_o do_v witness_n &_o testify_v to_o be_v so_o for_o who_o dare_v make_v any_o doubt_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n or_o that_o the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n witness_v to_o be_v so_o let_v we_o see_v therefore_o how_o god_n do_v testify_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o happy_a condition_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v it_o sure_o this_o testification_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o his_o enlighten_v spirit_n satisfy_v our_o understand_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o nature_n light_n we_o can_v not_o discern_v and_o fill_v our_o heart_n with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n such_o and_o so_o great_a as_o nothing_o within_o nature_n compass_n can_v yield_v for_o by_o this_o so_o great_a happy_a and_o heavenly_a a_o alteration_n which_o we_o find_v in_o ourselves_o upon_o and_o together_o with_o this_o receive_n of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n do_v teach_v we_o he_o do_v most_o clear_o witness_v unto_o we_o that_o it_o be_v heavenly_a indeed_o and_o such_o as_o we_o can_v not_o have_v attain_v unto_o but_o by_o divine_a revelation_n the_o other_o kind_n of_o testification_n be_v when_o be_v desire_v by_o they_o that_o teach_v and_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n to_o give_v some_o outward_a testimony_n that_o it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v some_o such_o thing_n for_o the_o good_a of_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o or_o hurt_v of_o such_o as_o refuse_v it_o as_o none_o but_o god_n can_v do_v but_o because_o partly_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o manifold_a illusion_n wherewith_o satan_n can_v and_o often_o do_v abuse_v man_n make_v it_o seem_v unto_o they_o that_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v which_o be_v not_o and_o partly_o because_o we_o do_v not_o exact_o know_v what_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o force_n of_o natural_a cause_n cap._n we_o can_v infallible_o know_v concern_v any_o outward_a thing_n perform_v before_o our_o eye_n that_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n immediate_o and_o miraculous_o wrought_v by_o god_n own_o most_o sacred_a hand_n this_o kind_n of_o testification_n be_v not_o matchable_a with_o the_o other_o nay_o we_o can_v be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o any_o thing_n do_v that_o it_o be_v god_n own_o work_n and_o in_o deed_n a_o miracle_n unless_o this_o assurance_n grow_v out_o of_o the_o former_a testification_n for_o we_o may_v just_o fear_v some_o fraud_n till_o find_v by_o the_o inward_a testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n the_o truth_n of_o that_o for_o proof_n whereof_o this_o strange_a thing_n be_v do_v we_o be_v assure_v it_o be_v the_o immediate_a and_o peculiar_a work_n of_o god_n ●…tavo_fw-la this_o assurance_n the_o quality_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v and_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o work_n of_o satan_n which_o only_o cause_n admiration_n and_o wonder_n and_o the_o miraculous_a work_n of_o god_n that_o be_v full_a of_o gracious_a goodness_n win_v the_o heart_n of_o such_o as_o see_v they_o will_v great_o strengthen_v to_o what_o purpose_n then_o will_n some_o man_n say_v serve_v all_o the_o miracle_n that_o be_v do_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n this_o doubt_n be_v easy_o clear_v for_o whereas_o the_o thing_n then_o teach_v be_v new_a strange_a and_o incredible_a to_o natural_a man_n they_o will_v not_o at_o all_o have_v listen_v unto_o they_o make_v inquiry_n after_o they_o or_o search_v into_o they_o have_v not_o the_o strange_a work_n that_o follow_v the_o publisher_n of_o they_o make_v they_o think_v the_o thing_n credible_a that_o be_v accompany_v with_o so_o strange_a attendant_n now_o while_o they_o give_v heed_n to_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v the_o word_n be_v mighty_a in_o operation_n and_o enter_v into_o they_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o discern_v it_o be_v god_n own_o word_n and_o that_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n which_o by_o it_o they_o be_v direct_v unto_o thus_o than_o we_o see_v that_o miracle_n be_v no_o sure_a note_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n nor_o certain_a mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o unless_o they_o be_v strengthen_v by_o some_o other_o mean_n not_o for_o that_o a_o miracle_n know_v to_o be_v so_o be_v insufficient_a to_o testify_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a infallible_o to_o know_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o seem_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v miracle_n be_v so_o in_o deed_n unless_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o for_o confirmation_n whereof_o they_o be_v wrought_v we_o thereby_o be_v persuade_v they_o be_v of_o god_n all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o best_a learned_a divine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 1._o yea_o cardinal_n caietan_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o he_o pronounce_v it_o can_v be_v certain_o know_v that_o those_o miracle_n be_v true_a miracle_n which_o the_o church_n admit_v and_o approve_v in_o the_o canonise_a of_o saint_n see_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o depend_v on_o man_n report_n that_o may_v deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v thus_o have_v declare_v what_o the_o use_n of_o miracle_n be_v and_o how_o far_o they_o give_v testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n let_v we_o see_v what_o our_o adversary_n conclude_v from_o hence_o for_o themselves_o or_o against_o us._n they_o have_v miracle_n for_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o we_o have_v none_o therefore_o they_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o we_o be_v in_o error_n for_o answer_v hereunto_o first_o we_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n can_v infallible_o and_o certain_o be_v find_v out_o by_o miracle_n especial_o in_o these_o last_o time_n because_o as_o gerson_n note_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr distinctione_n verarum_fw-la &_o falsarum_fw-la visionum_fw-la in_o this_o old_a age_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o last_o hour_n and_o time_n so_o near_o antichrist_n his_o revelation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvail_v at_o if_o the_o world_n like_o a_o dote_a old_a man_n be_v abuse_v by_o many_o illusion_n and_o fantasy_n most_o like_a to_o dream_n second_o we_o say_v that_o howsoever_o it_o may_v be_v some_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o such_o good_a man_n as_o live_v in_o the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n yet_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o those_o error_n which_o the_o romanist_n maintain_v against_o us._n for_o we_o peremptory_o deny_v that_o ever_o any_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o any_o in_o time_n past_a or_o in_o our_o time_n to_o confirm_v any_o of_o the_o thing_n controverse_v between_o they_o and_o us._n danielis_fw-la what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o report_n of_o their_o miracle_n they_o may_v easy_o conceive_v in_o that_o in_o all_o the_o difference_n they_o have_v have_v among_o themselves_o either_o in_o matter_n of_o opinion_n or_o of_o faction_n they_o have_v have_v contrary_a vision_n revelation_n and_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o persuasion_n of_o either_o side_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o difference_n touch_v mary_n conception_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o anti-popes_n whereupon_o cajetan_n write_v to_o pope_n leo_n about_o the_o controversy_n of_o mary_n conception_n wish_v he_o not_o to_o suffer_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v sway_v by_o show_n of_o miracle_n and_o give_v many_o good_a reason_n of_o the_o
testimony_n from_o their_o curate_n or_o confessor_n that_o they_o be_v humble_a discreet_a and_o devout_a person_n and_o like_a to_o take_v much_o good_a &_o no_o harm_n thereby_o this_o be_v the_o decree_n of_o pius_n 4_o but_o clement_n the_o 8_o in_o a_o late_a edition_n of_o the_o same_o index_n with_o new_a addition_n 4._o say_v that_o this_o power_n of_o permit_v layman_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o mandate_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o the_o general_a inquisition_n so_o that_o they_o may_v not_o permit_v any_o to_o have_v the_o whole_a bible_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n or_o any_o part_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n or_o any_o summary_n or_o epitomy_n though_o historical_a of_o the_o same_o bibles_n and_o this_o he_o prescribe_v to_o be_v inviolable_o keep_v thus_o do_v he_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o have_v the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n for_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v they_o be_v translate_v if_o no_o man_n may_v use_v they_o and_o together_o with_o they_o his_o predecessor_n pius_n the_o 4_o and_o all_o the_o learned_a prelate_n that_o concur_v with_o he_o and_o fall_v into_o the_o folly_n or_o indiscretion_n which_o stapleton_n condemn_v as_o we_o hear_v before_o thus_o variable_a and_o uncertain_a be_v these_o roman_a bishop_n who_o yet_o will_v be_v take_v not_o only_o to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n but_o to_o be_v that_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v but_o as_o stapleton_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v there_o be_v certain_a catholic_a and_o great_a man_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o name_v sir_n anglicanis_fw-la thomas_n more_n who_o think_v it_o fit_a as_o tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n to_o deliver_v unto_o they_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n without_o any_o restraint_n leave_v it_o free_a to_o all_o to_o read_v they_o that_o will_v for_o that_o so_o many_o good_a and_o godly_a christian_n who_o will_v receive_v great_a comfort_n and_o be_v much_o edify_v thereby_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o that_o most_o excellent_a benefit_n which_o they_o may_v have_v by_o read_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o few_o or_o many_o unlearned_a or_o unstable_a man_n who_o deprave_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o perdition_n of_o themselves_o and_o other_o as_o s._n peter_n say_v in_o his_o 2_o epistle_n cap._n 32._o no_o more_o than_o it_o have_v be_v fit_a that_o christ_n the_o lord_n shall_v have_v forbear_v to_o come_v and_o save_v other_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o wicked_a one_o to_o who_o his_o come_n be_v a_o rock_n of_o offence_n &_o a_o stone_n to_o stumble_v at_o or_o that_o he_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n that_o lighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n shall_v therefore_o have_v keep_v himself_o away_o or_o not_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n because_o man_n love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n and_o sure_o if_o the_o vulgar_a free_a and_o ordinary_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v and_o restrain_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o wicked_a who_o abuse_v it_o the_o scripture_n must_v never_o have_v be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a or_o latin_a tongue_n for_o all_o these_o tongue_n be_v vulgar_a to_o the_o jew_n grecian_n and_o roman_n this_o opinion_n stapleton_n confess_v to_o be_v probable_a and_o godly_a and_o yet_o he_o dislike_v it_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n who_o earnest_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o do_v chrysostome_n in_o sundry_a place_n 2_o homily_n upon_o matthew_n 〈◊〉_d 3._o necessaria_fw-la homily_n upon_o lazarus_n dicuntur_fw-la 3._o homily_n upon_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_n sumite_fw-la 28._o homily_n upon_o genesis_n 9_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n where_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n command_v secular_a man_n that_o be_v marry_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o whereas_o st_n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n 3._o have_v these_o word_n let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v plentiful_o in_o you_o in_o all_o wisdom_n teach_v and_o admonish_v yourselves_o in_o psalm_n hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o nine_o homily_n and_o hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n collect_v and_o infer_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v read_v of_o lay_v man_n and_o that_o by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v therefore_o untrue_a that_o ●…rgumenti_fw-la stapleion_n have_v that_o chrysostome_n do_v not_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a but_o as_o fit_v and_o profitable_a for_o they_o that_o live_v idle_o in_o a_o rich_a city_n thus_o to_o occupy_v themselves_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v only_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o do_v nothing_o that_o they_o be_v to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o better_a that_o he_o have_v in_o answer_n hereunto_o that_o chrysostome_n speak_v not_o exact_o but_o as_o a_o preacher_n or_o orator_n as_o if_o in_o the_o pulpit_n a_o preacher_n may_v exhort_v the_o people_n with_o all_o earnestness_n to_o that_o which_o be_v not_o fit_v to_o be_v do_v or_o as_o if_o there_o be_v not_o many_o now_o adays_o that_o live_v idle_o in_o rich_a city_n from_o the_o translate_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o the_o people_n private_a read_n of_o the_o same_o let_v we_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n here_o i_o will_v first_o show_v what_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v and_o second_o what_o the_o opinion_n of_o judicious_a man_n be_v and_o have_v be_v touch_v this_o point_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o have_v the_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a for_o first_o 799._o origen_n write_v against_o celsus_n and_o answer_v that_o calumniation_n of_o they_o that_o say_v christian_n use_v certain_a barbarous_a word_n and_o name_n of_o god_n in_o their_o prayer_n suppose_v virtue_n to_o be_v in_o they_o more_o than_o in_o greek_a or_o latin_a word_n or_o name_n tell_v they_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o that_o be_v true_a and_o right_a christian_n in_o their_o prayer_n use_v not_o the_o name_n of_o god_n find_v in_o the_o scripture_n write_v in_o hebrew_n but_o the_o grecian_n use_v greek_a word_n the_o latin_n latin_a and_o all_o pray_v and_o praise_n god_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n &_o he_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o tongue_n hear_v they_o in_o what_o tongue_n soever_o they_o pray_v and_o understandeth_v they_o speak_v in_o so_o different_a language_n no_o less_o then_o if_o they_o all_o use_v one_o language_n bellarmine_n say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o whole_a people_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v amen_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o not_o as_o now_o by_o one_o appoint_v in_o their_o steed_n for_o justin_n martyr_n testify_v express_o in_o his_o 2_o apology_n that_o the_o whole_a people_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v amen_o when_o the_o priest_n end_v his_o prayer_n or_o thanksgiving_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o same_o use_n be_v continue_v a_o long_a time_n after_o both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o liturgy_n of_o chrysostome_n where_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v say_v by_o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o people_n be_v distinct_o set_v down_o and_o by_o cyprian_a in_o his_o sermon_n upon_o the_o lord_n prayer_n where_o he_o say_v the_o people_n do_v answer_v we_o lift_v they_o up_o unto_o the_o lord_n when_o the_o priest_n will_v they_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n and_o by_o hierome_n praefat_fw-la lib._n 2._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galatas_fw-la who_o write_v that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o people_n be_v hear_v with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n sound_v out_o amen_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o thunder_a from_o heaven_n thus_o far_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o 2_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la chap._n 16_o which_o argue_v that_o they_o have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n for_o otherwise_o how_o can_v they_o thus_o have_v answer_v to_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o divine_a service_n as_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o do_v sure_o the_o long_a answer_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o priest_n in_o their_o prayer_n
if_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n &_o redeem_v then_o sure_o mary_n be_v scandalize_v at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o simeon_n now_o propehsy_v and_o even_o thy_o soul_n which_o know_v that_o being_n a_o virgin_n and_o never_o know_v man_n thou_o bring_v he_o forth_o which_o hear_v of_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o &_o the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o a_o sword_n of_o infidelity_n shall_v pierce_v thou_o shall_v be_v strike_v with_o a_o sword_n of_o doubt_v and_o thy_o thought_n shall_v rend_v thou_o into_o diverse_a part_n when_o thou_o shall_v see_v he_o who_o thou_o hear_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o who_o thou_o know_v to_o be_v generate_v in_o thou_o without_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n to_o be_v crucify_v to_o die_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o humane_a punishment_n and_o at_o the_o last_o with_o tear_n &_o strong_a cry_n complain_v &_o say_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o 138._o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 13_o psalm_n agree_v with_o origen_n his_o word_n be_v these_o when_o christ_n be_v crucify_v there_o be_v none_o find_v that_o do_v good_a the_o disciple_n all_o flee_v away_o john_n run_v away_o naked_a peter_n deny_v he_o the_o sword_n of_o doubt_v go_v through_o the_o soul_n of_o mary_n herself_o and_o 73._o augustine_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n have_v these_o word_n and_o that_o which_o he_o add_v say_v and_o a_o sword_n shall_v pierce_v thy_o soul_n that_o the_o thought_n of_o many_o heart_n may_v be_v reveal_v thereby_o doubtless_o he_o signify_v that_o even_o mary_n herself_o of_o who_o the_o son_n of_o god_n take_v flesh_n shall_v doubt_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n death_n but_o so_o as_o to_o be_v confirm_v in_o his_o resurrection_n and_o luc._n theophylact_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n of_o luke_n happy_o by_o the_o sword_n he_o understand_v the_o dolour_n happy_o the_o scandal_n wherewith_o mary_n be_v scanalize_v for_o see_v he_o to_o be_v crucify_v happy_o she_o think_v how_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v without_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n who_o have_v do_v miracle_n and_o raise_v the_o dead_a can_v be_v crucify_v spit_v upon_o and_o die_v and_o that_o he_o say_v the_o cogitation_n of_o many_o heart_n shall_v be_v reveal_v import_v no_o more_o but_o the_o thought_n of_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v shall_v be_v reveal_v and_o be_v reprehend_v they_o shall_v find_v present_a remedy_n and_o so_o shall_v thou_o o_o virgin_n be_v reveal_v and_o manifest_v what_o thou_o think_v of_o christ_n and_o then_o thou_o shall_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n so_o likewise_o peter_n shall_v be_v manifest_v when_o he_o shall_v deny_v he_o but_o the_o power_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v show_v when_o he_o receive_v he_o upon_o his_o repentance_n mathaeum_n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o those_o word_n behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o thy_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n and_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o who_o be_v my_o brethren_n say_v that_o christ_n utter_v these_o word_n not_o as_o be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o mother_n or_o deny_v she_o that_o bear_v he_o for_o have_v he_o be_v ashamed_a of_o she_o he_o will_v not_o have_v pass_v through_o her_o womb_n but_o show_v that_o it_o will_v nothing_o profit_v she_o that_o she_o be_v his_o mother_n unless_o she_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o beseem_v she_o for_o this_o that_o she_o now_o attempt_v argue_v too_o much_o ambition_n for_o she_o will_v make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o people_n that_o she_o have_v power_n over_o and_o can_v command_v her_o son_n not_o conceave_a any_o great_a matter_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o she_o come_v unreasonable_o see_v therefore_o say_v he_o the_o want_n of_o discretion_n in_o she_o and_o they_o for_o it_o have_v be_v fit_n for_o they_o to_o come_v in_o and_o to_o have_v hear_v with_o the_o multitude_n or_o if_o not_o to_o have_v stay_v till_o he_o have_v end_v his_o speech_n and_o then_o to_o have_v come_v unto_o he_o but_o they_o call_v he_o out_o and_o this_o they_o do_v before_o all_o show_v too_o much_o ambition_n and_o willing_a to_o show_v that_o with_o great_a power_n they_o command_v he_o and_o in_o another_o place_n mathaeum_n it_o be_v admirable_a to_o see_v how_o the_o disciple_n though_o very_o desirous_a to_o learn_v yet_o know_v when_o it_o be_v fit_v to_o ask_v he_o for_o they_o do_v not_o this_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o hear_n of_o all_o and_o this_o matthew_n show_v say_v and_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o saint_n mark_v they_o come_v unto_o he_o private_o or_o when_o he_o be_v alone_o it_o have_v be_v fit_v his_o mother_n and_o his_o brethren_n have_v do_v so_o &_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v call_v he_o out_o and_o make_v such_o a_o show_n as_o they_o do_v and_o write_v upon_o john_n and_o entreat_v of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o virgin_n when_o the_o wine_n begin_v to_o fail_v they_o have_v no_o wine_n say_v 20._o she_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v they_o a_o pleasure_n and_o to_o make_v herself_o the_o more_o illustrious_a by_o her_o child_n and_o happy_o she_o be_v carry_v with_o some_o humane_a affection_n as_o his_o brethren_n be_v when_o they_o say_v show_v thyself_o to_o the_o world_n desire_v to_o reap_v glory_n from_o his_o miracle_n and_o therefore_o he_o auswer_v something_o sharp_o say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o my_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v &_o a_o little_a after_o speak_v of_o her_o call_v he_o out_o mention_v in_o the_o former_a place_n he_o say_v she_o have_v not_o that_o opinion_n of_o he_o that_o be_v fit_v but_o because_o she_o have_v bring_v he_o forth_o she_o think_v to_o command_v he_o in_o every_o thing_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o mother_n who_o she_o shall_v have_v honour_v and_o worship_v as_o her_o lord_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v who_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o 48._o theophylact_n write_v upon_o the_o same_o word_n say_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n will_v take_v upon_o she_o to_o be_v a_o mother_n and_o show_v that_o she_o have_v power_n over_o her_o son_n for_o as_o yet_o she_o conceive_v no_o great_a thing_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o she_o will_v draw_v he_o out_o unto_o she_o while_o he_o be_v yet_o speak_v be_v a_o little_a proud_a that_o she_o have_v such_o a_o son_n at_o her_o command_n what_o do_v christ_n therefore_o because_o he_o know_v her_o intention_n hear_v what_o he_o say_v who_o be_v my_o mother_n which_o he_o say_v not_o to_o wrong_v his_o mother_n but_o to_o correct_v her_o mind_n desirous_a of_o glory_n &_o subject_n to_o such_o affection_n as_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v euthymius_n in_o his_o commentary_n observe_v the_o former_a place_n in_o chrysostome_n but_o dare_v not_o reprehend_v it_o as_o 58._o sixtus_n senensis_n tell_v us._n but_o they_o will_v say_v 36._o augustine_n affirm_v that_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v without_o sin_n sure_o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o he_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o they_o allege_v out_o of_o augustine_n be_v these_o the_o pelagian_n commemorate_v sundry_a holy_a one_o which_o be_v report_v not_o only_o not_o to_o have_v sin_v but_o to_o have_v live_v righteous_o as_o abel_n enoch_n melchizedech_n abraham_n isaak_n jacob_n etc._n etc._n and_o add_v to_o these_o certain_a woman_n as_o deborah_n anna_n samuel_n mother_n judith_n esther_n another_o anna_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n elizabeth_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o he_o say_v that_o piety_n require_v we_o to_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v without_o sin_n the_o word_n of_o augustine_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o pelagian_n be_v these_o except_o therefore_o the_o holy_a virgin_n mary_n of_o who_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o will_v make_v no_o question_n at_o all_o now_o that_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o sin_n for_o hence_o do_v we_o know_v that_o more_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o she_o whole_o to_o over_o come_v sin_n who_o be_v honour_v so_o much_o as_o to_o conceive_v and_o bear_v he_o who_o we_o know_v to_o have_v have_v no_o sin_n this_o virgin_n therefore_o except_v if_o we_o can_v gather_v together_o all_o those_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n as_o now_o live_v and_o ask_v of_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v without_o sin_n what_o answer_n think_v we_o will_v they_o make_v i_o pray_v tell_v i_o whether_o that_o which_o this_o man_n say_v or_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n john_n sure_o how_o much_o soever_o they_o excel_v in_o sanctity_n while_o they_o be_v in_o
state_n of_o grace_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v against_o he_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o man_n live_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n as_o he_o must_v not_o except_v against_o 5._o thomas_n aquinas_n say_v eternity_n of_o punishment_n answer_v not_o to_o the_o grievousnesse_n of_o sin_n but_o to_o the_o eternal_a continuance_n of_o it_o without_o remission_n and_o that_o therefore_o eternity_n of_o punishment_n be_v due_a to_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o unregenerate_a so_o continue_v ratione_fw-la conditionis_fw-la subiecti_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o he_o that_o commit_v it_o in_o who_o grace_n be_v not_o find_v by_o which_o only_a sin_n may_v be_v remit_v whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o unregenerate_a so_o continue_v be_v worthy_a of_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o shall_v so_o be_v punish_v and_o therefore_o be_v mortal_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n every_o sin_n of_o the_o regenerate_a that_o may_v stand_v with_o grace_n and_o not_o exclude_v it_o be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v venial_a that_o be_v such_o as_o leave_v place_n for_o that_o grace_n that_o can_v and_o will_v procure_v remission_n of_o which_o sort_n be_v all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n call_v according_a to_o purpose_n which_o be_v not_o commit_v with_o full_a consent_n cardinal_n caietan_n write_v upon_o those_o word_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n clear_v this_o point_n exceed_v well_o grace_n only_o say_v he_o be_v the_o fountain_n whence_o flow_v remission_n of_o sin_n nothing_o therefore_o positive_o make_v sin_n venial_a or_o remissible_a but_o to_o be_v in_o grace_n nor_o nothing_o make_v a_o sin_n positive_o irremissible_a or_o not_o venial_a but_o the_o be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n for_o to_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o have_v that_o which_o will_v procure_v remission_n of_o sin_n &_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o be_v in_o a_o state_n wherein_o remission_n can_v be_v have_v so_o that_o that_o which_o positive_o make_v sin_n venial_a or_o not_o venial_a be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o subject_n wherein_o it_o be_v find_v if_o we_o respect_v therefore_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o without_o grace_n it_o will_v remain_v eternal_o in_o stain_n &_o guilt_n and_o so_o will_v subject_v the_o sinner_n to_o eternal_a punishment_n so_o that_o every_o sin_n in_o itself_o deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n and_o be_v mortal_a but_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o some_o sin_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n wherein_o they_o be_v conversant_a or_o their_o not_o be_v do_v with_o full_a consent_n that_o they_o do_v not_o necessary_o imply_v a_o exclusion_n of_o grace_n out_o of_o the_o subject_n in_o which_o they_o be_v find_v &_o so_o do_v not_o necessary_o put_v the_o doer_n of_o they_o into_o a_o state_n positive_o make_v they_o not_o venial_a by_o remove_v grace_n the_o fountain_n of_o remission_n so_o that_o to_o conclude_v no_o sin_n be_v positive_o venial_a as_o have_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o may_v claim_v remission_n for_o no_o sin_n imply_v or_o have_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o of_o grace_n the_o fountain_n of_o remission_n but_o some_o sin_n either_o ex_fw-la genere_fw-la or_o ex_fw-la imperfectione_n actus_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n wherein_o a_o man_n offend_v or_o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v with_o full_a consent_n to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v remissible_a or_o venial_a negatiuè_fw-la per_fw-la non_fw-la ablationem_fw-la principii_fw-la remissionis_fw-la in_o that_o it_o do_v not_o necessary_o imply_v the_o exclusion_n of_o grace_n the_o fountain_n of_o remission_n and_o some_o sin_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o manner_n do_v imply_v such_o exclusion_n and_o be_v therefore_o name_v mortal_a ●…43_n richardus_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la agree_v with_o the_o former_a and_o more_o clear_o confirm_v our_o opinion_n than_o they_o do_v the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o we_o find_v in_o he_o touch_v this_o point_n be_v these_o one_o have_v write_v unto_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v in_o a_o certain_a doubt_n the_o doubt_n be_v this_o how_o it_o can_v be_v true_a that_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o his_o teacher_n that_o venial_a sin_n deserve_v only_o temporal_a punishment_n &_o mortal_a eternal_a whereas_o yet_o in_o those_o that_o go_v to_o hell_n if_o any_o of_o those_o sin_n that_o they_o call_v venial_a be_v find_v they_o must_v be_v punish_v and_o every_o punishment_n sustain_v in_o hell_n be_v eternal_a see_v out_o of_o hell_n there_o be_v no_o redemption_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o even_o those_o sin_n that_o be_v name_v venial_a deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n for_o they_o be_v punish_v eternal_o in_o the_o damn_a and_o it_o must_v not_o be_v think_v that_o the_o punishment_n inflict_v for_o they_o be_v more_o than_o they_o deserve_v all_o this_o concern_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o reprobate_n he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o show_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v venial_a and_o mortal_a but_o for_o other_o consideration_n than_o some_o suppose_a his_o resolution_n therefore_o of_o the_o doubt_n propose_v be_v express_v in_o these_o word_n that_o sin_n seem_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v veviall_a which_o find_v in_o the_o regenerate_a in_o christ_n of_o itself_o alone_o never_o bring_v upon_o they_o eternal_a punishment_n though_o they_o repent_v not_o particular_o of_o the_o same_o &_o that_o be_v mortal_a which_o though_o it_o be_v alone_o bring_v eternal_a death_n upon_o the_o doer_n of_o it_o without_o particular_a repentance_n that_o therefore_o be_v a_o venial_a sin_n which_o of_o itself_o alone_o &_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o hinder_v be_v ever_o sure_a to_o be_v pardon_v and_o remit_v in_o the_o regenerate_a so_o as_o never_o to_o bring_v condemnation_n upon_o they_o &_o that_o be_v mortal_a that_o of_o itself_o alone_o put_v the_o doer_n into_o a_o state_n of_o condemnation_n and_o death_n here_o we_o see_v sin_n be_v distinguish_v some_o be_v say_v to_o be_v venial_a &_o some_o mortal_a but_o none_o be_v say_v to_o be_v venial_a without_o respect_n have_v to_o a_o state_n of_o regeneration_n as_o bellarmive_v imagine_v to_o these_o we_o may_v add_v 4._o almain_n and_o fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o sundry_a other_o but_o it_o need_v not_o for_o howsoever_o our_o adversary_n make_v show_v to_o the_o contrary_a they_o all_o confess_v that_o to_o be_v true_a that_o we_o say_v for_o every_o sin_n eternal_o punishable_a deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n but_o every_o the_o least_o and_o light_a sin_n that_o we_o can_v commit_v without_o grace_n and_o remission_n remain_v eternal_o in_o stain_n and_o guilt_n and_o be_v eternal_o punishable_a whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o every_o sin_n deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n and_o so_o be_v by_o nature_n mortal_a 6._o so_o that_o in_o this_o point_n as_o in_o the_o former_a the_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v a_o protestant_a church_n chap._n 10._o of_o free_a will_n cardinal_n contarenus_n have_v write_v a_o most_o divine_a and_o excellent_a discourse_n touch_v free_a will_n wherein_o he_o show_v the_o nature_n of_o free_a will_n &_o how_o the_o freedom_n of_o will_n be_v preserve_v or_o lose_v in_o this_o discourse_n first_o he_o show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v free_a and_o then_o 2_o what_o that_o be_v which_o we_o call_v free_a will_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v free_a he_o show_v in_o this_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n that_o be_v not_o at_o his_o own_o dispose_n to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o be_v to_o do_v what_o another_o will_v have_v he_o to_o do_v so_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v free_a who_o be_v at_o his_o own_o dispose_n so_o as_o to_o do_v nothing_o present_o because_o another_o will_v have_v he_o but_o what_o seem_v good_a unto_o himself_o &_o he_o have_v a_o like_n to_o do_v the_o more_o therefore_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v move_v by_o &_o of_o itself_o the_o more_o free_a it_o be_v so_o that_o in_o natural_a thing_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o according_o as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o any_o thing_n within_o or_o without_o themselves_o in_o their_o motion_n they_o come_v near_o to_o liberty_n or_o be_v far_o from_o it_o so_o that_o a_o stone_n be_v in_o a_o sort_n free_a when_o it_o go_v downward_o because_o it_o be_v carry_v by_o something_o within_o but_o it_o suffer_v violence_n and_o be_v move_v by_o something_o from_o without_o when_o it_o ascend_v yet_o do_v it_o not_o move_v itself_o when_o it_o go_v downward_o but_o
perform_v 2._o because_o no_o profit_n come_v unto_o god_n from_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v aeternam_fw-la do_v the_o good_a &_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n he_o account_v his_o gain_n and_o out_o of_o his_o goodness_n so_o esteem_v of_o our_o good_a work_n as_o if_o they_o be_v profitable_a unto_o he_o 3._o because_o though_o our_o work_n be_v profitable_a unto_o god_n and_o though_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v they_o of_o ourselves_o yet_o we_o can_v never_o repay_v unto_o he_o so_o much_o good_a as_o we_o have_v already_o &_o do_v daily_o receive_v from_o he_o but_o now_o it_o be_v so_o that_o he_o first_o bestow_v on_o we_o one_o gift_n which_o he_o may_v afterward_o reward_v with_o another_o 4_o because_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o &_o so_o have_v need_n of_o pardon_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o merit_v any_o thing_n at_o god_n hand_n 5_o because_o no_o meritorious_a act_n be_v so_o great_a a_o good_a as_o eternal_a life_n &_o so_o not_o equivalent_a unto_o it_o and_o therefore_o so_o great_a a_o reward_n can_v in_o strictness_n of_o justice_n be_v due_a unto_o it_o actus_fw-la secundum_fw-la se_fw-la consideratus_fw-la say_v ●_o scotus_n absque_fw-la acceptatione_n divinâ_fw-la secundum_fw-la strictam_fw-la justitiam_fw-la non_fw-la fuisset_fw-la dignus_fw-la tali_fw-la praemio_fw-la ex_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la bonitate_fw-la quam_fw-la haberet_fw-la ex_fw-la suis_fw-la principiis_fw-la quod_fw-la patet_fw-la quia_fw-la semper_fw-la praemium_fw-la est_fw-la majus_fw-la bonum_fw-la merito_fw-la &_o justitia_fw-la stricta_fw-la non_fw-la reddit_fw-la melius_fw-la pro_fw-la minus_fw-la bono_fw-mi ideo_fw-la bene_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la deus_fw-la praemiat_fw-la ultra_fw-la meritum_fw-la condignum_fw-la universaliter_fw-la quidem_fw-la ultra_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la actus_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la meritum_fw-la quia_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la actus_fw-la sit_fw-la condignum_fw-la meritum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ultra_fw-la naturam_fw-la &_o bonitatem_fw-la actus_fw-la intrinsecam_fw-la ex_fw-la mera_fw-fr gratuita_fw-la acceptatione_n divina_fw-la et_fw-fr forte_fw-fr adhuc_fw-la ultra_fw-la illud_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-la communi_fw-la lege_fw-la esset_fw-la actus_fw-la acceptandus_fw-la quandoque_fw-la deus_fw-la praemiat_fw-la ex_fw-la mera_fw-fr liberalitate_fw-la and_o again_o lib._n 4._o do_v 49._o q._n 6._o de_fw-la tertio_fw-la dubio_fw-la de_fw-fr praemio_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la aeterna_fw-la beatitudo_fw-la dico_fw-la quod_fw-la loquendo_fw-la de_fw-la stricta_fw-la justitia_fw-la deus_fw-la nulli_fw-la nostrum_fw-la propter_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la merita_fw-la est_fw-la debtor_n perfectionis_fw-la reddendae_fw-la tam_fw-la intensae_fw-la quam_fw-la est_fw-la beatitudo_fw-la propter_fw-la immoderatum_fw-la excessum_fw-la illius_fw-la perfectionis_fw-la ultra_fw-la illa_fw-la merita_fw-la sed_fw-la esto_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la liberalitate_fw-la sua_fw-la determinasset_fw-la meritis_fw-la confer_v actum_fw-la tam_fw-la perfectum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la praemium_fw-la tali_fw-la quidem_fw-la justitia_fw-la qualis_fw-la decet_fw-la eum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la supererogantis_fw-la in_o praemijs_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la necessario_fw-la quòd_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la justitiam_fw-la sit_fw-la reddenda_fw-la perfectio_fw-la perennis_fw-la tanquam_fw-la praemium_fw-la imo_fw-la abundans_fw-la fieret_fw-la retributio_fw-la in_o beatitudine_fw-la unius_fw-la momenti_fw-la 6._o to_o merit_n be_v to_o make_v a_o thing_n due_a that_o be_v not_o due_a before_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v merit_v eternal_a life_n 12._o for_o they_o that_o define_v merit_n do_v say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v merit_v so_o great_a a_o good_a as_o eternal_a life_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la unless_o he_o be_v first_o justify_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o whosoever_o be_v so_o justify_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n have_v right_o to_o eternal_a life_n in_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v reconcile_v and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n therefore_o see_v to_o merit_n be_v to_o make_v that_o due_a that_o be_v not_o due_a before_o no_o man_n can_v merit_v eternal_a life_n and_o 20._o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o many_o think_v eternal_a life_n can_v be_v merit_v but_o only_o some_o degree_n in_o the_o same_o and_o for_o this_o reason_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o cardinal_n contarenus_n to_o cardinal_n farnesius_n the_o divine_n of_o both_o side_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o ratisbon_n think_v good_a to_o omit_v and_o suppress_v the_o name_n of_o merit_n 1_o for_o that_o it_o may_v be_v think_v a_o derogation_n to_o the_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n that_o give_v we_o free_o eternal_a life_n to_o say_v that_o we_o meritte_v it_o and_o second_o for_o that_o it_o may_v be_v conceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o due_a before_o in_o respect_n of_o free_a gift_n and_o that_o our_o work_n can_v merit_v it_o though_o it_o be_v not_o due_a to_o we_o by_o gift_n let_v we_o see_v therefore_o what_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v teach_v touch_v merit_n the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o bell_n challenge_v name_v by_o he_o the_o downfall_n of_o popery_n article_n the_o five_o chapt_n 3._o pag._n 220._o protest_v that_o bell_n do_v great_o wrong_v the_o romanist_n in_o say_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o that_o it_o be_v define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o good_a work_n do_v in_o god_n grace_n be_v condign_o meritorious_a of_o eternal_a life_n for_o the_o council_n define_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o they_o that_o hold_v it_o hold_v it_o not_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o a_o opinion_n only_o whereupon_o vega_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o duine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n write_v the_o fide_fw-la &_o operib●…_n quaest_n 4._o that_o some_o noble_a school_n divine_v be_v move_v with_o no_o light_a argument_n and_o use_v a_o certain_a sober_a and_o prudent_a moderation_n have_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o condign_a merit_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n and_o he_o say_v quest_n 5._o praedest_fw-la that_o gregory_n durand_n marsil_n walden_n burgensis_n and_o eckius_fw-la do_v deny_v condign_a merit_n sotus_n also_o another_o divine_a of_o the_o say_a council_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la naturâ_fw-la &_o gratiâ_fw-la cap._n 7._o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n among_o catholic_n about_o condign_a merit_n and_o chap_n 8._o after_o he_o have_v prove_v condign_a merit_n out_o of_o the_o council_n and_o otherways_o yet_o conclude_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o call_v it_o conclusionem_fw-la probatissimam_fw-la a_o most_o approve_a conclusion_n and_o bellarmine_n lib_n 5_o the_o iustificatione_n cap_n 16_o after_o he_o have_v rehearse_v two_o opinion_n of_o catholic_n whereof_o the_o one_o seem_v to_o deny_v condign_a merit_n the_o other_o admit_v it_o only_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n propose_v and_o defend_v the_o three_o opinion_n which_o defend_v condign_a merit_n absolute_o only_o as_o verissimam_fw-la &_o communem_fw-la sententiam_fw-la theologorum_fw-la most_o true_a and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o divine_n this_o confession_n may_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n never_o admit_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n of_o condignity_n as_o any_o point_n of_o her_o faith_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n see_v even_o since_o these_o difference_n grow_v that_o be_v now_o afoot_o between_o those_o of_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o stiff_a maintainer_n of_o all_o confusion_n former_o find_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n there_o be_v many_o find_v among_o the_o enemy_n of_o reformation_n that_o reject_v the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n yet_o for_o the_o better_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o reader_n i_o will_v more_o full_o and_o at_o large_a set_v down_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o oppose_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o meritte_v proper_o so_o name_v before_o luther_n time_n 1._o gregorius_n ariminensis_n beside_o the_o reason_n former_o allege_v that_o no_o act_n of_o man_n though_o do_v in_o &_o out_o of_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n be_v so_o great_a a_o good_a as_o eternal_a life_n and_o equivalent_a to_o it_o &_o consequent_o that_o so_o great_a a_o reward_n as_o eternal_a life_n can_v be_v due_a unto_o it_o ex_fw-la debito_fw-la iustitiae_fw-la have_v sundry_a other_o reason_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o etiam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la hominis_fw-la bona_fw-la merita_fw-la esse_fw-la dei_fw-la munera_fw-la quibus_fw-la cum_fw-la vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la redditur_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la nisi_fw-la gratia_fw-la pro_fw-la gratia_fw-la redditur_fw-la haec_fw-la augustinus_n idem_fw-la antecedens_fw-la probatur_fw-la ratione_fw-la nam_fw-la constat_fw-la quod_fw-la animae_fw-la carenti_fw-la charitate_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o gloriâ_fw-la deus_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la neutram_fw-la est_fw-la illi_fw-la debtor_n &_o si_fw-mi that_fw-mi charitatem_fw-la gratis_o donat_fw-la nunc_fw-la autem_fw-la nullus_fw-la diceret_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la donat_fw-la aliquod_fw-la munus_fw-la alicui_fw-la fiat_fw-la ei_fw-la alterius_fw-la muneris_fw-la debtor_n ergo_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la
of_o the_o same_o waldensis_n 64_o who_o say_v that_o some_o suppose_v the_o conversion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v in_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v assumpt_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n person_n some_o thought_n it_o to_o be_v by_o way_n of_o impanation_n and_o some_o by_o way_n of_o figurative_a or_o tropical_a appellation_n the_o first_o and_o second_o of_o these_o opinion_n find_v the_o better_a entertainment_n in_o some_o man_n mind_n because_o they_o grant_v the_o essential_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o yet_o deny_v not_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bread_n still_o remain_v to_o sustain_v the_o appear_a accident_n these_o opinion_n he_o report_v to_o have_v be_v very_o acceptable_a to_o many_o not_o without_o sigh_n wish_v the_o church_n have_v decree_v that_o man_n shall_v follow_v one_o of_o they_o whereupon_o john_n paris_n write_v that_o this_o way_n of_o impanation_n so_o please_v guido_n the_o carmelite_n sometime_o reader_n of_o the_o holy_a palace_n that_o he_o profess_v if_o he_o have_v be_v pope_n he_o will_v have_v prescribe_v and_o command_v the_o embrace_n of_o it_o neither_o be_v it_o less_o please_v to_o many_o in_o waldensis_n time_n who_o as_o he_o say_v do_v as_o it_o be_v wish_v in_o their_o heart_n it_o be_v free_a from_o they_o to_o defend_v it_o and_o that_o a_o decree_n in_o the_o church_n be_v pass_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o it_o chap._n 18._o touch_v or_o all_o manducation_n alexander_n 2._o of_o hales_n and_o 1._o bonaventura_n do_v teach_v that_o no_o man_n can_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n without_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n be_v mystical_a not_o corporal_a bonaventura_n show_v for_o that_o whereas_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n imply_v in_o corporal_a eat_n to_o wit_n a_o mastication_n or_o chew_v a_o traiection_n into_o the_o stomach_n and_o belly_n and_o a_o conversion_n of_o the_o thing_n eat_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o eater_n this_o late_a which_o be_v most_o essential_a in_o eat_v can_v agree_v unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o turn_v into_o our_o substance_n but_o rather_o in_o mystical_a sort_n turn_v we_o into_o itself_o it_o appear_v by_o that_o of_o waldensis_n cite_v before_o that_o many_o thought_n the_o wicked_a do_v not_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n see_v they_o suppose_v so_o much_o only_o of_o the_o bread_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o believer_n or_o if_o all_o be_v turn_v that_o yet_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n cease_v to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o that_o the_o bread_n return_v again_o chap._n 19_o of_o the_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n body_n on_o the_o altar_n as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a touch_v the_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n body_n on_o the_o altar_n the_o church_n never_o teach_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o romanist_n now_o teach_v as_o appear_v by_o these_o testimony_n follow_v although_o say_v 85_o biel_n christ_n be_v once_o offer_v when_o he_o appear_v in_o our_o flesh_n he_o be_v offer_v notwithstanding_o daily_o hide_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n not_o touch_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o import_v punishment_n or_o suffering_n for_o christ_n be_v not_o daily_o wound_v he_o suffer_v not_o he_o die_v not_o but_o for_o two_o other_o cause_n the_o consecration_n and_o receive_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n may_v be_v name_v a_o sacrifice_n &_o oblation_n first_o because_o it_o be_v a_o representation_n and_o memorial_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n &_o holy_a oblation_n make_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n second_o because_o it_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o now_o the_o resemblance_n of_o thing_n as_o augustine_n note_v write_v to_o simplicianus_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v resemblance_n as_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o say_v when_o we_o behold_v a_o paint_a table_n or_o wall_n this_o be_v cicero_n this_o salustius_n wherefore_o see_v the_o celebration_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o lively_a resemblance_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o true_a sacrifice_v of_o he_o it_o may_v right_o be_v name_v the_o sacrifice_a of_o he_o peter_n lombard_n thomas_n and_o the_o other_o schoolman_n say_v 15._o bellarmine_n be_v not_o careful_a of_o that_o which_o be_v now_o in_o question_n touch_v the_o daily_o renew_v real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n but_o only_o seek_v to_o show_v how_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n may_v be_v call_v a_o offering_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v a_o slay_v of_o he_o &_o therefore_o propose_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n they_o answer_v for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o offering_n or_o sacrifice_n because_o it_o have_v a_o resemblance_n of_o the_o true_a and_o real_a offering_n which_o be_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o because_o it_o communicate_v unto_o we_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o true_a and_o real_a kill_v of_o christ._n chap._n xx._n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n that_o remission_n of_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n be_v not_o teach_v nor_o believe_v in_o former_a time_n by_o the_o church_n appear_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o divine_n who_o teach_v the_o contrary_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n say_v 1._o durandus_fw-la may_v be_v understand_v to_o benefit_v the_o dead_a two_o way_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o remit_v the_o fault_n or_o diminish_v or_o take_v away_o the_o punishment_n in_o the_o first_o sort_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n can_v profit_v the_o dead_a because_o either_o the_o sin_n wherein_o they_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n be_v mortal_a or_o venial_a if_o it_o be_v mortal_a he_o that_o so_o depart_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o remission_n if_o venial_a he_o need_v no_o help_n because_o such_o remission_n of_o sin_n consist_v in_o the_o order_n the_o will_n aright_o again_o whereby_o man_n right_o dislike_v that_o they_o ill_o affect_v before_o now_o the_o will_n of_o they_o that_o depart_v hence_o in_o grace_n &_o yet_o with_o venial_a sin_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o body_n be_v bring_v into_o due_a order_n because_o as_o weight_n and_o lightness_n carry_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v heavy_a or_o light_a if_o there_o be_v no_o impediment_n to_o their_o own_o place_n so_o grace_n and_o charity_n carry_v man_n go_v hence_o to_o the_o possess_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n so_o that_o all_o thing_n hinder_v or_o stay_v from_o the_o present_a enjoy_n thereof_o be_v bitter_a and_o unpleasant_a now_o because_o not_o only_a punishment_n for_o mortal_a sin_n former_o commit_v but_o also_o venial_a sin_n if_o any_o be_v find_v in_o he_o that_o die_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n hinder_v from_o such_o desire_v enjoy_v therefore_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v dislike_v in_o which_o dislike_n the_o will_n be_v reorder_v again_o which_o in_o the_o like_n of_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v disorder_v etc._n etc._n the_o merit_n say_v 1._o scotus_n of_o he_o that_o die_v in_o charity_n be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o venial_a sin_n neither_o be_v this_o cause_n hinder_v from_o work_v the_o proper_a effect_n thereof_o in_o he_o that_o die_v as_o it_o often_o be_v in_o he_o that_o live_v for_o in_o he_o that_o live_v there_o be_v a_o stop_n and_o hindrance_n so_o long_o as_o he_o remain_v actual_o in_o sin_n but_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o stop_n because_o then_o a_o man_n commit_v no_o sin_n and_o therefore_o by_o such_o merit_n sin_n be_v remit_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o in_o the_o instant_n of_o death_n all_o venial_a sin_n be_v remit_v to_o man_n die_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n 3._o alexander_n of_o hales_n make_v grace_n to_o be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o that_o which_o be_v give_v in_o baptism_n the_o second_o that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o man_n repent_v of_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n and_o the_o three_o that_o which_o be_v in_o man_n depart_v hence_o which_o he_o call_v final_a grace_n this_o last_o he_o say_v take_v away_o all_o sinfullnesse_n out_o of_o the_o soul_n because_o when_o the_o soul_n part_v from_o the_o body_n all_o proneness_n to_o ill_a and_o all_o perturbation_n which_o be_v find_v in_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o conjunction_n with_o the_o flesh_n do_v cease_v the_o power_n thereof_o be_v quiet_v and_o perfect_o subject_v to_o grace_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v all_o venial_a sin_n remove_v so_o that_o no_o venial_a sin_n be_v remit_v
and_o as_o after_o he_o all_o man_n of_o note_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n do_v there_o be_v great_a exception_n take_v to_o hierome_n for_o adventure_v to_o translate_v the_o scripture_n out_o of_o hebrew_n and_o among_o other_o 10._o augustine_n and_o the_o african_n seem_v not_o much_o to_o like_v it_o they_o therefore_o reckon_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n according_a as_o they_o find_v they_o in_o use_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n not_o exact_o note_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o yet_o not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o hebrew_n canon_n consist_v only_o of_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n and_o that_o many_o take_v exception_n to_o they_o when_o they_o allege_v any_o testimony_n out_o of_o those_o book_n the_o hebrew_n admit_v not_o against_o which_o exception_n 14._o augustine_n no_o otherwise_o justify_v himself_o but_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n in_o read_v they_o which_o proof_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o prove_v they_o canonical_a see_v the_o prayer_n of_o manasses_n confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n to_o be_v apocryphal_a the_o three_o and_o four_o of_o esdras_n the_o book_n call_v pastor_n and_o some_o other_o be_v likewise_o read_v by_o they_o of_o the_o church_n cite_v by_o they_o in_o their_o write_n and_o many_o thing_n translate_v out_o of_o they_o into_o the_o public_a prayer_n and_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o than_o these_o father_n be_v not_o look_v careful_o into_o the_o original_n name_v all_o those_o book_n canonical_a which_o the_o use_n of_o god_n church_n approve_v as_o profitable_a and_o contain_v matter_n of_o good_a instruction_n and_o so_o number_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n &_o the_o rest_n with_o the_o canonical_a who_o opinion_n yet_o as_o cajetan_n think_v be_v not_o that_o they_o be_v absolute_o canonical_a but_o in_o a_o sort_n in_o that_o they_o contain_v a_o good_a direction_n of_o man_n manner_n these_o the_o greek_a father_n reject_v from_o the_o canon_n admit_v only_o those_o which_o the_o reform_a church_n at_o this_o day_n admit_v as_o also_o almost_o all_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n after_o hierome_n do_v that_o some_o of_o the_o greek_a father_n reject_v the_o book_n of_o hester_n it_o be_v as_o 20._o sixtus_n senensis_n right_o note_v by_o reason_n of_o those_o apocryphal_a addition_n which_o they_o not_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n do_v not_o discern_v from_o the_o true_a part_n of_o it_o which_o error_n make_v they_o to_o reject_v the_o whole_a book_n as_o apocryphal_a this_o be_v also_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o admit_v those_o apocryphal_a additament_n join_v to_o the_o book_n of_o daniel_n howsoever_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o they_o which_o diligent_o look_v into_o these_o thing_n do_v admit_v all_o those_o book_n which_o we_o admit_v and_o reject_v all_o those_o which_o we_o reject_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o one_o among_o all_o the_o ancient_a before_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o clear_o and_o of_o set_a purpose_n number_v the_o book_n synopsi_n controverse_v between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n with_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canon_n 25._o melito_n than_o bishop_n of_o sardis_n go_v purposely_o into_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v diligent_o search_v out_o the_o monument_n and_o sacred_a book_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n reckon_v those_o only_a canonical_a which_o we_o do_v save_v that_o he_o add_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n 24._o origen_n admit_v and_o acknowledge_v only_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n athanasius_n likewise_o number_v the_o book_n of_o the_o canon_n in_o the_o same_o sort_n and_o add_v there_o be_v also_o certain_a other_o book_n which_o be_v read_v only_o to_o the_o catechuman_n and_o novice_n psalmorum_fw-la hilarius_n say_v the_o law_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n be_v contain_v in_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n answerable_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o hebrew_n letter_n educatione_n nazianzen_n also_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o catechesision_n cyrillus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n only_o he_o add_v the_o book_n of_o baruch_n think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o jeremy's_n prophecy_n but_o suffer_v not_o any_o other_o to_o be_v add_v say_v the_o apostle_n and_o first_o bishop_n which_o deliver_v these_o only_a be_v wise_a and_o much_o more_o to_o be_v esteem_v than_o such_o as_o now_o go_v about_o to_o add_v other_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v ponderibus_fw-la epiphanius_n symboli_fw-la ruffinus_n galiato_n hierome_n and_o 17._o gregory_n and_o 10._o josephus_n confirm_v the_o opinion_n of_o these_o father_n saying_n that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o artaxerxes_n till_o the_o age_n wherein_o he_o live_v all_o thing_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n which_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o god_n people_n and_o religion_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o those_o which_o be_v former_o write_v because_o after_o that_o time_n the_o indubitate_a succession_n of_o the_o prophet_n cease_v unto_o these_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n some_o of_o our_o adversary_n as_o 289._o andradius_fw-la and_o other_o do_v answer_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o not_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n so_o not_o deny_v absolute_o these_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o esteem_v by_o the_o jew_n but_o this_o answer_n heliodorum_n the_o word_n of_o hierome_n do_v most_o clear_o refute_v as_o say_v he_o the_o church_n not_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n read_v the_o book_n of_o judeth_n tobias_n and_o the_o maccabee_n but_o receive_v they_o not_o as_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o likewise_o it_o may_v read_v these_o two_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n but_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o doubtful_a point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o bellarmine_n sixtus_n senensis_n and_o other_o clear_o confess_v that_o this_o answer_n of_o andradius_fw-la be_v insufficient_a they_o therefore_o add_v another_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o canon_n be_v not_o perfect_o know_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o father_n we_o ask_v they_o when_o it_o be_v confirm_v if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o as_o judeth_n hierome_n say_v some_o report_n receive_v the_o book_n of_o judeth_n as_o canonical_a though_o videtur_fw-la lindan_n say_v it_o be_v not_o likely_a it_o do_v and_o that_o hierome_n do_v not_o say_v it_o do_v so_o but_o that_o some_o report_v so_o we_o ask_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o so_o many_o catholic_a divine_n after_o the_o nicene_n council_n reject_v these_o book_n as_o they_o do_v before_o if_o they_o say_v they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o council_n of_o cartharge_n that_o be_v but_o a_o provincial_a council_n as_o be_v that_o of_o laodicea_n in_o which_o they_o be_v not_o mention_v if_o they_o say_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o trullo_n we_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o confirm_v there_o 9_o than_o that_o of_o laodicea_n and_o as_o 9_o canus_n note_v the_o six_o council_n do_v not_o express_o name_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o only_o speak_v of_o canon_n agree_v upon_o in_o new_a carthage_n diatribae_fw-la second_o we_o say_v that_o those_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o council_n wherein_o this_o pretend_a confirmation_n be_v find_v be_v of_o no_o credit_n with_o the_o romanist_n so_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o neither_o the_o nicene_n council_n nor_o this_o other_o do_v confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n question_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o worthy_a divine_n in_o the_o church_n after_o those_o counsel_n till_o our_o age_n as_o 17._o gregory_n fidei_fw-la damascenus_n 2._o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la 9_o ricardus_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la 25._o petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la tobiae_fw-la lyranus_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la dionysius_n carthusianus_n ecclesiasticum_fw-la hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la 2._o thomas_n aquinas_n 16._o occam_n 5._o picus_n mirandula_n 22._o waldensis_n armeniorum_fw-la armacanus_n ult._n driedo_n cajetan_n and_o other_o chap._n 24._o of_o the_o uncertainty_n and_o contrariety_n find_v among_o papist_n touch_v book_n canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a now_o controverse_v but_o let_v we_o come_v particular_o to_o the_o book_n controverse_v and_o see_v how_o sweet_o our_o adversary_n agree_v with_o themselves_o in_o admit_v or_o reject_v they_o first_o touch_v the_o book_n of_o baruch_n though_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n have_v confirm_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a yet_o 9_o melchior_n canus_n say_v it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o it_o be_v or_o not_o and_o yet_o say_v if_o it_o be_v not_o canonical_a the_o counsel_n of_o florence_n &_o trent_n have_v err_v and_o the_o people_n
force_v his_o people_n to_o borrow_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n one_o from_o another_o only_o some_o doubt_n there_o be_v touch_v the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n &_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n and_o the_o gospel_n of_o mark_n write_v as_o some_o say_v in_o latin_a that_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n faciens_fw-la hierome_n &_o other_o affirm_v trans_fw-la guido_n fabritius_n say_v it_o be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n but_o in_o vulgar_a hebrew_n which_o be_v the_o syriac_a that_o they_o of_o jerusalem_n do_v speak_v which_o opinion_n 320._o other_o seem_v to_o incline_v unto_o the_o gospel_n in_o hebrew_n which_o some_o bring_v forth_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n 33._o some_o say_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n &_o translate_v by_o luke_n or_o barnab_n as_o into_o greek_a day_n the_o syrian_n say_v the_o gospel_n of_o mark_n be_v first_o write_v in_o latin_a &_o that_o afterward_o he_o translate_v both_o it_o and_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n beside_o into_o syriac_a which_o they_o say_v they_o have_v preserve_v to_o this_o day_n this_o syriac_a translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o know_v in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n till_o our_o age_n as_o praef_n fabritius_n boderianus_n note_v who_o thereupon_o break_v out_o into_o the_o praise_n of_o our_o time_n if_o the_o man_n of_o this_o generation_n either_o know_v the_o happiness_n thereof_o or_o how_o to_o use_v it_o howbeit_o that_o mark_n be_v author_n of_o this_o syriac_a translation_n which_o the_o syrian_n in_o this_o age_n have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o 4._o we_o can_v persuade_v ourselves_o because_o none_o of_o the_o father_n that_o live_v in_o syria_n and_o egypt_n as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n origen_n eusebius_n athanasius_n theophilus_n epiphanius_n hierome_n cyrill_n theodoret_n and_o damascen_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o it_o &_o beside_o it_o be_v apparent_o defective_a in_o diverse_a thing_n as_o the_o learned_a note_n so_o then_o the_o indubitate_a original_n of_o these_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o hebrew_n or_o syriac_a if_o they_o be_v write_v at_o first_o in_o these_o tongue_n be_v lose_v and_o the_o church_n deprive_v of_o they_o the_o greek_a be_v hold_v to_o be_v original_a in_o respect_n of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o that_o either_o they_o be_v all_o write_v in_o it_o or_o translate_v into_o it_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n chap._n 26._o of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a thus_o have_v deliver_v in_o what_o tongue_n the_o scripture_n and_o book_n of_o god_n be_v write_v it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v what_o the_o principal_a translation_n of_o they_o have_v be_v and_o whether_o the_o indubitate_a verity_n of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o original_n or_o in_o the_o translation_n sensisse_fw-la there_o be_v as_o some_o suppose_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a before_o the_o time_n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a but_o the_o first_o that_o be_v in_o note_n and_o remain_v long_o in_o esteem_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o of_o the_o septuagint_n in_o the_o time_n of_o ptolomaeus_n philadelphus_n ponderibus_fw-la who_o intend_v to_o furnish_v a_o library_n at_o alexandria_n with_o all_o the_o choice_a book_n the_o world_n will_v afford_v among_o other_o place_n send_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o ruler_n &_o guide_n of_o the_o people_n there_o who_o send_v unto_o he_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n write_v in_o hebrew_n in_o letter_n of_o gold_n which_o he_o not_o understanding_n send_v the_o second_o time_n for_o interpreter_n and_o they_o 15._o send_v unto_o he_o 72_o in_o imitation_n of_o moses_n who_o when_o he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mount_n to_o receive_v the_o law_n be_v command_v to_o take_v with_o he_o 70_o of_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n add_v two_o to_o the_o number_n prescribe_v lest_o take_v six_o out_o of_o some_o tribe_n and_o but_o five_o out_o of_o other_o some_o dislike_n may_v have_v grow_v among_o they_o these_o in_o 70_o day_n translate_v the_o whole_a old_a testament_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a for_o though_o josephus_n and_o the_o jew_n say_v they_o translate_v only_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n 6._o yet_o the_o consent_a voice_n of_o all_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o they_o translate_v the_o whole_a move_v we_o rather_o to_o think_v the_o whole_a be_v translate_v by_o they_o then_o only_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n unless_o we_o say_v with_o 6._o junius_n for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o this_o difference_n that_o only_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n be_v translate_v by_o the_o first_o 72._o send_v to_o ptolomee_n and_o the_o rest_n afterward_o by_o 72_o also_o though_o not_o the_o same_o that_o which_o some_o report_n that_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o several_a celles_fw-fr which_o long_o after_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o alexandria_n praefat_fw-la hierome_n reject_v as_o a_o fable_n show_v that_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v report_v by_o aristaeus_n that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o business_n ponderibus_fw-la and_o that_o no_o remaynder_n of_o any_o such_o celles_fw-fr be_v to_o be_v find_v at_o alexandria_n but_o that_o they_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o confer_v together_o every_o day_n till_o the_o nine_o hour_n in_o 70_o day_n perfect_v the_o whole_a work_n and_o augustine_n leave_v it_o doubtful_a this_o fable_n be_v urge_v by_o some_o to_o prove_v that_o these_o translatour_n be_v 355._o guide_v by_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n and_o so_o can_v not_o err_v which_o false_a and_o absurd_a conceit_n hierome_n condemn_v likewise_o the_o second_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a be_v that_o of_o aquila_n in_o the_o time_n of_o adrian_n the_o emperor_n the_o 3._o of_o theodotion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o commodus_n the_o four_o of_o symachus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o severus_n the_o five_o without_o name_n of_o author_n be_v find_v in_o the_o city_n of_o hiericho_n in_o the_o time_n of_o antonius_n caracalla_n the_o six_o in_o nicopolis_n in_o the_o day_n of_o alexander_n the_o son_n of_o mammca_n the_o job._n seven_o of_o origen_n who_o translate_v not_o but_o correct_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n add_v some_o thing_n out_o of_o theodotion_n translation_n which_o addition_n he_o note_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o shine_a star_n detract_n other_o thing_n which_o he_o pierce_v through_o with_o a_o spit_n ponderibus_fw-la the_o eight_o of_o lucian_n the_o martyr_n be_v not_o a_o translation_n but_o a_o correction_n only_o of_o such_o fault_n as_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n this_o be_v find_v at_o nicomedia_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n est_fw-la lucian_n be_v martyr_v long_o before_o in_o the_o day_n of_o dioclesian_n the_o emperor_n the_o nine_o of_o hesichius_n be_v likewise_o but_o a_o correction_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n of_o the_o septuagint_n it_o appear_v by_o hierome_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o book_n of_o chronicle_n that_o they_o of_o alexandria_n &_o egypt_n use_v that_o edition_n of_o the_o septuagint_n which_o hesichius_n correct_v they_o of_o constantinople_n that_o of_o lucian_n the_o martyr_n and_o they_o of_o the_o province_n and_o country_n lie_v between_o these_o that_o which_o origen_n correct_v the_o greek_a translation_n find_v to_o need_v correction_n and_o correct_v by_o these_o as_o it_o seem_v be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o common_a edition_n not_o as_o be_v a_o different_a translation_n from_o that_o of_o the_o septuagint_n but_o as_o be_v that_o which_o be_v common_a in_o all_o man_n hand_n and_o much_o alter_v and_o corrupt_v from_o the_o original_a purity_n which_o these_o worthy_a man_n endeavour_v to_o restore_v it_o to_o again_o fretellam_fw-la and_o be_v so_o name_v because_o there_o be_v another_o preserve_v in_o great_a purity_n in_o that_o worthy_a work_n of_o origen_n that_o fill_v all_o the_o famous_a library_n in_o the_o world_n in_o those_o time_n 16._o in_o which_o first_o divide_v every_o page_n into_o six_o column_n or_o pillar_n in_o the_o first_o he_o put_v the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o hebrew_n character_n in_o the_o second_o in_o greek_a in_o the_o three_o the_o interpretation_n of_o aquila_n in_o the_o four_o of_o symmachus_n in_o the_o five_o of_o the_o septuagint_n in_o the_o six_o of_o theodotion_n and_o name_v the_o volume_n thus_o dispose_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o four_o translation_n tetrapla_n a_o four_o foul_a work_n in_o respect_n of_o these_o translation_n and_o the_o hebrew_n in_o two_o kind_n of_o character_n place_v in_o two_o several_a pillar_n or_o column_n hexapla_n a_o
sibi_fw-la abstulisse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la that_o while_o they_o be_v unwilling_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v any_o authority_n for_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o their_o scripture_n they_o will_v deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o which_o they_o ever_o hold_v the_o rich_a treasure_n in_o the_o world_n 59_o especial_o see_v it_o have_v ever_o be_v think_v by_o the_o wise_a in_o god_n church_n that_o god_n in_o his_o providence_n have_v therefore_o preserve_v these_o forlorn_a and_o forsake_a creature_n and_o disperse_v they_o into_o the_o several_a nation_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o those_o monument_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o they_o honour_v and_o embrace_v as_o receive_v from_o god_n himself_o thus_o then_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v no_o great_a nor_o general_a corruption_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o fault_n which_o by_o negligence_n in_o time_n creep_v into_o it_o be_v but_o few_o and_o such_o as_o by_o help_n of_o the_o mazzore_v may_v easy_o be_v amend_v but_o because_o tridentinae_n andradius_fw-la 2._o bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o our_o adversary_n have_v undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o confutation_n of_o their_o fellow_n error_n in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v no_o long_o insist_v upon_o it_o let_v we_o come_v therefore_o to_o the_o new_a testament_n chap._n 29_o of_o the_o suppose_a corruption_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v 1._o sixtus_n senensis_n out_o of_o fritellam_fw-la hierome_n if_o any_o question_n arise_v among_o they_o that_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o latin_a and_o there_o appear_v difference_n &_o variety_n among_o the_o translation_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o greek_a as_o to_o the_o fountain_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o some_o incorrupt_a and_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n find_v among_o they_o that_o read_v the_o same_o in_o greek_a out_o of_o which_o the_o latin_a may_v be_v correct_v and_o that_o if_o some_o fault_n be_v find_v in_o the_o greek_a copy_n by_o the_o negligence_n or_o mistake_v of_o they_o that_o write_v they_o out_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v discern_v by_o lay_v together_o sundry_a copy_n casual_o corrupt_v it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o what_o in_o one_o book_n be_v deprave_a by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o writer_n in_o another_o be_v find_v right_o now_o say_v he_o whereas_o certain_a heretic_n do_v say_v that_o either_o hierome_n do_v not_o translate_v the_o same_o greek_a that_o now_o be_v or_o that_o he_o translate_v it_o very_o ill_a it_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o greek_a be_v the_o same_o which_o all_o christian_n read_v &_o translate_v before_o and_o after_o hierome_n but_o that_o he_o translate_v it_o not_o but_o only_o in_o some_o thing_n correct_v the_o old_a translation_n he_o find_v in_o use_n before_o and_o that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o vulgar_a and_o old_a translation_n be_v not_o whole_o to_o be_v abandon_v and_o reject_v for_o that_o though_o it_o do_v not_o exact_o agree_v with_o the_o greek_a which_o be_v the_o original_n yet_o it_o omit_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o truth_n of_o story_n nor_o have_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o romanist_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v corrupt_v and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a to_o correct_v the_o latin_a translation_n by_o it_o allege_v certain_a place_n which_o they_o presume_v they_o can_v easy_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v corrupt_v dei_fw-la bellarmine_n give_v instance_n in_o these_o that_o follow_v in_o the_o 1_o cor_n 15._o the_o greek_a that_o now_o be_v have_v in_o all_o copy_n the_o first_o man_n be_v of_o the_o earth_n earthly_a the_o second_o man_n be_v the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n the_o late_a part_n of_o this_o sentence_n marcionem_fw-la tertullian_n suppose_v to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v and_o alter_v by_o the_o marcionite_n instead_o of_o that_o the_o latin_a text_n have_v the_o second_o man_n be_v from_o heaven_n heavenly_a as_o 15._o ambrose_n locum_fw-la hierome_n and_o many_o of_o the_o father_n read_v also_o touch_v this_o place_n we_o answer_v that_o not_o only_o the_o greek_a copy_n now_o extant_a have_v it_o as_o we_o read_v and_o translate_v but_o the_o syriac_a &_o arabic_a also_o and_o that_o 12_o damascene_fw-la de_fw-la orthodoxa_fw-la fide_fw-la read_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n 8._o notwithstanding_o because_o many_o of_o the_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a follow_v the_o other_o read_v we_o think_v it_o very_o doubtful_a which_o be_v the_o original_a verity_n this_o difference_n of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n see_v neither_o of_o they_o contain_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o second_o place_n they_o produce_v be_v 1_o john_n 4._o 3._o where_o the_o greek_a have_v every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o &c._n &c._n but_o the_o latin_a every_o spirit_n that_o dissolve_v jesus_n it_o be_v true_a that_o socrates_n in_o his_o history_n 32_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n have_v as_o the_o latin_a now_o have_v and_o that_o these_o word_n be_v put_v out_o by_o such_o as_o divide_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n yet_o see_v not_o only_o all_o copy_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n but_o the_o syriac_a translation_n also_o have_v every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o &c._n &c._n and_o cyprian_n so_o cit_v the_o place_n and_o 6._o augustine_n read_v and_o interprete_v both_o we_o think_v it_o likewise_o very_o doubtful_a which_o be_v the_o original_a verity_n the_o next_o place_n be_v the_o 1._o cor_n 7._o where_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a we_o read_v in_o this_o sort_n he_o that_o be_v with_o a_o wife_n be_v careful_a for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n how_o he_o may_v please_v his_o wife_n and_o be_v divide_v that_o be_v distract_v with_o many_o care_n but_o in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v thus_o he_o that_o have_v a_o wife_n be_v careful_a for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n how_o to_o please_v his_o wife_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o a_o wife_n and_o a_o virgin_n or_o they_o be_v divide_v one_o from_o another_o that_o the_o former_a be_v the_o true_a read_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n bellarmine_n prove_v because_o hierome_n against_o pronunciat_fw-la jovinian_a affirm_v it_o to_o be_v so_o and_o some_o other_o of_o the_o father_n follow_v the_o same_o but_o he_o shall_v know_v that_o not_o only_o the_o most_o part_n of_o all_o the_o greek_a copy_n have_v as_o we_o translate_v but_o the_o syriac_a and_o arabic_a translation_n also_o beside_o basil_n the_o greek_a scholiast_n theophylact_n and_o hierome_n himself_o against_o heluidius_fw-la and_o to_o eustochium_fw-la de_fw-la custodia_fw-la virginitatis_fw-la so_o that_o this_o proof_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o original_n prove_v too_o weak_a the_o next_o allegation_n concern_v the_o 12._o to_o the_o roman_n of_o serve_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v the_o time_n be_v much_o weak_a for_o beza_n show_v that_o some_o greek_a copy_n have_v as_o the_o vulgar_a have_v and_o as_o bellarmine_n say_v the_o truth_n be_v serve_v the_o lord_n that_o the_o story_n of_o the_o adulteress_n in_o the_o 8_o of_o john_n be_v not_o find_v in_o many_o greek_a copy_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o general_a corruption_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n our_o adversary_n undertake_v to_o prove_v for_o if_o it_o do_v the_o latin_a also_o shall_v be_v reject_v as_o corrupt_v and_o false_a for_o as_o pelagianos_fw-la hierome_n witness_v many_o of_o the_o latin_a copy_n want_v this_o story_n as_o well_o as_o the_o greek_a testamenti_fw-la some_o of_o the_o ancient_a be_v of_o opinion_n that_o this_o story_n be_v first_o find_v in_o the_o apocryphal_a gospel_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n but_o whatsoever_o we_o think_v of_o it_o it_o make_v nothing_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n see_v it_o be_v ever_o find_v in_o some_o greek_a copy_n though_o not_o in_o all_o they_o the_o rhemist_n to_o disgrace_v the_o greek_a allege_v sundry_a place_n where_o they_o say_v our_o translator_n choose_v rather_o to_o follow_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a than_o the_o greek_a thereby_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v corrupt_v but_o if_o we_o examine_v the_o particular_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o their_o allegation_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o lie_a and_o false_a report_n for_o they_o ever_o follow_v some_o and_o those_o the_o best_a and_o most_o incorrupt_a greek_a copy_n as_o r●…emists_n beza_n show_v wherefore_o fail_v in_o this_o allegation_n they_o betake_v
but_o of_o good_a parentage_n and_o of_o his_o own_o people_n he_o may_v not_o uncover_v his_o head_n rend_v his_o garment_n nor_o go_v in_o to_o mourn_v over_o any_o that_o be_v dead_a no_o though_o it_o be_v his_o father_n or_o mother_n his_o employment_n be_v to_o go_v daily_o into_o the_o sanctuary_n to_o light_v the_o lamp_n to_o burn_v incense_n and_o every_o week_n to_o provide_v the_o shewbread_n or_o bread_n of_o proposition_n on_o the_o feast_n day_n to_o offer_v the_o people_n sacrifice_n together_o with_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o once_o in_o the_o year_n on_o the_o day_n of_o expiation_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o to_o cleanse_v and_o hallow_v it_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o make_v prayer_n for_o himself_o and_o they_o the_o holy_a vestment_n in_o which_o he_o be_v to_o perform_v this_o service_n of_o god_n be_v describe_v to_o have_v be_v a_o breastplate_n a_o ephod_n a_o robe_n a_o broider_a coat_n a_o mitre_n and_o a_o girdle_n the_o ephod_n be_v of_o gold_n blue_a silk_n purple_a scarlet_a and_o fine_a twine_v linen_n of_o broider_a work_n in_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o ephod_n be_v two_o onyx-stone_n and_o upon_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n grave_v six_o name_n upon_o the_o one_o stone_n and_o six_o other_o name_n upon_o the_o other_o stone_n according_a to_o their_o generation_n these_o be_v stone_n of_o remembrance_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n before_o the_o lord_n of_o these_o ibid._n josephus_n write_v that_o they_o show_v when_o god_n be_v present_a with_o his_o people_n when_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n they_o offer_v unto_o he_o and_o be_v please_v with_o they_o and_o likewise_o when_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o they_o and_o reject_v they_o in_o that_o when_o god_n be_v please_v with_o his_o people_n and_o accept_v their_o sacrifice_n the_o stone_n which_o be_v on_o the_o right_a shoulder_n shine_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o may_v be_v see_v a_o far_o off_o whereas_o otherwise_o no_o such_o shine_a brightness_n appear_v in_o it_o the_o breastplate_n of_o judgement_n be_v of_o broydered_a work_n like_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ●…phod_n of_o gold_n blue_a silk_n purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o fine_a twine_v linen_n it_o be_v set_v full_a of_o place_n for_o stone_n even_o four_o row_n of_o stone_n the_o stone_n that_o be_v set_v in_o these_o row_n be_v twelve_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o in_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n be_v grave_v in_o this_o breastplate_n likewise_o be_v put_v vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_v which_o be_v upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n when_o he_o go_v in_o before_o the_o lord_n by_o these_o twelve_o stone_n that_o be_v in_o the_o breastplate_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n god_n do_v show_v unto_o his_o people_n the_o success_n of_o their_o battle_n when_o they_o intend_v to_o make_v war_n for_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o prosper_v their_o enterprise_n these_o stone_n do_v so_o shine_v that_o they_o be_v thereby_o well_o assure_v god_n will_v go_v forth_o with_o their_o army_n and_o fight_v their_o battle_n for_o they_o otherwise_o they_o be_v discourage_v from_o attempt_v any_o thing_n the_o 9_o vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_v likewise_o some_o of_o the_o jew_n think_v to_o have_v be_v two_o stone_n by_o which_o the_o high_a priest_n understand_v what_o thing_n be_v to_o come_v &_o reveal_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o people_n for_o if_o nothing_o new_a &_o strange_a be_v to_o fall_v out_o they_o hold_v their_o colour_n but_o if_o any_o great_a &_o extraordinary_a mutation_n be_v to_o follow_v the_o bright_a shining_n of_o these_o stone_n do_v foreshow_v it_o 3._o other_o suppose_v that_o they_o be_v the_o name_n of_o god_n jehovah_n in_o letter_n of_o gold_n by_o the_o shine_a brightness_n whereof_o they_o understand_v the_o answer_n of_o god_n when_o they_o seek_v unto_o he_o but_o exod._n augustine_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o these_o very_a word_n be_v write_v in_o letter_n of_o gold_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o breastplate_n that_o do_v hang_v before_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n chap._n 5._o of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o second_o rank_n or_o order_n touch_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o inferior_a rank_n they_o have_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o consecration_n which_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v in_o sacrifice_v they_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o &_o in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n in_o burn_a incense_n provide_v the_o shewbread_n and_o prepare_v &_o look_v to_o the_o lamp_n &_o light_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o they_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o thing_n but_o that_o he_o be_v chief_a and_o they_o assistant_n unto_o he_o the_o only_a thing_n that_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o he_o be_v the_o 30._o consult_v of_o god_n by_o urim_n &_o thummim_n and_o the_o 30._o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a to_o make_v a_o atonement_n their_o vestment_n be_v the_o same_o eucherio_n save_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n only_o have_v the_o breastplate_n &_o a_o ephod_n of_o gold_n for_o the_o rest_n do_v also_o sometime_o wear_v a_o linen_n ephod_n the_o thing_n require_v in_o they_o that_o be_v to_o serve_v in_o the_o priestly_a office_n be_v these_o they_o may_v not_o be_v 18._o deform_v nor_o defective_a in_o body_n they_o may_v 9_o drink_v no_o wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n they_o 1._o may_v not_o defile_v themselves_o by_o the_o dead_a nor_o come_v near_o unto_o any_o that_o be_v dead_a except_o it_o be_v their_o father_n or_o mother_n son_n or_o daughter_n or_o sister_n unmarried_a they_o 5._o may_v not_o shave_v their_o head_n nor_o beard_n nor_o cut_v their_o flesh_n they_o may_v 7_o marry_v no_o harlot_n nor_o woman_n divorce_v the_o 8._o first_o that_o be_v consecrate_v priest_n be_v nadab_n abihu_n eleazar_n and_o ithamar_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n 2._o nadab_n and_o abihu_n die_v before_o their_o father_n and_o have_v no_o child_n they_o both_o perish_v because_o they_o 10._o offer_v strange_a fire_n upon_o the_o altar_n so_o that_o eleazar_n &_o ithamar_n only_o remain_v of_o who_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o priest_n that_o be_v afterwards_o do_v come_v 4._o from_o eleazar_n in_o david_n time_n be_v issue_v sixteen_o family_n and_o from_o ithamar_n eight_o these_o david_n sort_v into_o twenty_o four_o class_n or_o course_n and_o name_v every_o classis_fw-la or_o course_n after_o the_o name_n of_o he_o who_o be_v then_o chief_a of_o each_o family_n and_o for_o the_o order_n of_o they_o and_o set_v one_o before_o another_o they_o cast_v lot_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o into_o these_o rank_n be_v for_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v all_o the_o priest_n to_o attend_v every_o day_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v some_o intermission_n and_o time_n of_o vacation_n one_o classis_fw-la perform_v the_o service_n one_o week_n &_o another_o another_o though_o say_v suprá_fw-fr josephus_n there_o be_v twenty_o four_o class_n or_o course_n of_o priest_n among_o we_o whereof_o every_o one_o have_v more_o than_o five_o thousand_o yet_o they_o wait_v not_o all_o at_o once_o but_o on_o certain_a day_n appoint_v &_o assign_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v pass_v other_o succeed_v who_o be_v call_v into_o the_o temple_n at_o noon_n &_o have_v the_o key_n thereof_o deliver_v unto_o they_o and_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n by_o tale_n in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o chronicle_n that_o 8._o jehoiada_n the_o priest_n dismiss_v not_o the_o course_n that_o be_v send_v not_o away_o the_o troop_n and_o company_n of_o priest_n that_o attend_v the_o service_n of_o the_o temple_n when_o their_o time_n be_v expire_v and_o according_a to_o order_n they_o shall_v have_v depart_v and_o other_o succeed_v they_o for_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o in_o the_o depose_n of_o wicked_a athaliah_n and_o the_o establish_n and_o settle_v of_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a king_n in_o the_o royal_a throne_n of_o judah_n in_o these_o course_v they_o be_v wont_a to_o cast_v lot_n what_o kind_n of_o service_n every_o one_o shall_v do_v in_o the_o week_n of_o his_o attendance_n as_o for_o example_n who_o shall_v sacrifice_v and_o who_o shall_v burn_v incense_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o luke_n that_o 5._o in_o the_o time_n of_o herod_n king_n of_o judaea_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a priest_n name_v zacharias_n of_o the_o course_n of_o abiah_n 9_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o he_o execute_v the_o priest_n office_n before_o god_n as_o his_o course_n come_v in_o order_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o priest_n office_n
think_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n nor_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o his_o western_a bishop_n be_v more_o to_o be_v listen_v unto_o and_o obey_v than_o all_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o 2_o adrian_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tharasius_n insert_v into_o the_o seven_o general_a council_n say_v that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v the_o primacy_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n which_o be_v the_o last_o allegation_n of_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o counsel_n be_v no_o more_o than_o we_o grant_v before_o if_o it_o be_v right_o understand_v of_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o honour_n and_o not_o of_o a_o universal_a supreme_a command_v power_n over_o all_o this_o be_v all_o that_o bellarmine_n can_v allege_v out_o of_o any_o ancient_a council_n in_o which_o his_o allegation_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o the_o reader_n to_o observe_v his_o guileful_a cunning_n who_o undertake_v to_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o papacy_n bring_v nothing_o for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o the_o word_n of_o particular_a man_n and_o they_o either_o suitor_n to_o the_o pope_n agent_n for_o he_o or_o pope_n to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v out_o of_o latter_a counsel_n as_o that_o of_o lateran_n under_o innocentius_n and_o that_o of_o lion_n and_o florence_n i_o will_v answer_v when_o i_o come_v to_o show_v the_o opinion_n of_o latter_a time_n touch_v the_o pope_n universality_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n and_o therefore_o will_v pass_v they_o over_o in_o this_o place_n chap._n 34._o of_o the_o pretend_a proof_n of_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n take_v out_o of_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o pope_n the_o next_o proof_n that_o be_v bring_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o papal_a jurisdiction_n be_v the_o say_n of_o pope_n in_o their_o decretal_a epistle_n these_o epistle_n 1●…4_n bellarmine_n sort_v into_o three_o rank_n place_v in_o the_o first_o the_o epistle_n of_o those_o pope_n that_o live_v within_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n in_o the_o second_o the_o epistle_n of_o those_o that_o live_v after_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n and_o in_o the_o three_o the_o epistle_n of_o such_o as_o come_v in_o the_o midst_n between_o these_o touch_v the_o first_o he_o confess_v that_o certain_a error_n have_v creep_v into_o they_o and_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v indubitate_a but_o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n read_v and_o judgement_n minse_v not_o the_o matter_n as_o bellarmine_n do_v but_o plain_o and_o in_o direct_a word_n profess_v that_o he_o think_v these_o epistle_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a pope_n be_v counterfeit_a his_o word_n be_v these_o 2._o in_o my_o opinion_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v of_o constantine_n and_o his_o donation_n be_v apocryphal_a as_o also_o perhaps_o some_o other_o long_o and_o large_a write_n attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a man_n clemens_n and_o anacletus_fw-la the_o pope_n on_o which_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o magnify_v the_o roman_a see_v which_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o honour_n and_o to_o exalt_v it_o more_o than_o either_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o church_n or_o be_v any_o way_n fit_a do_v either_o altogether_o or_o in_o some_o sort_n ground_n themselves_o for_o assure_o if_o any_o man_n will_v diligent_o read_v over_o and_o peruse_v all_o the_o write_n attribute_v to_o those_o holy_a man_n and_o compare_v the_o time_n wherein_o they_o live_v with_o those_o write_n and_o then_o will_v be_v conversant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o be_v till_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n hierome_n and_o ambrose_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o counsel_n wherein_o authentical_a write_n be_v allege_v commit_v they_o to_o memory_n &_o make_v use_n of_o they_o he_o will_v find_v this_o to_o be_v true_a that_o neither_o any_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o those_o forename_a epistle_n in_o any_o of_o those_o write_n nor_o that_o the_o epistle_n compare_v with_o the_o time_n wherein_o their_o suppose_a author_n live_v can_v be_v make_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o time_n of_o their_o life_n but_o by_o the_o very_a circumstance_n of_o time_n bewray_v themselves_o to_o be_v counterfeit_a it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n how_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n and_o succeed_v peter_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n the_o author_n of_o these_o epistle_n write_v unto_o james_n who_o be_v brother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o the_o same_o james_n die_v eight_o year_n before_o peter_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o cause_n as_o beda_n write_v in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o canonical_a epistle_n why_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n be_v set_v first_o among_o the_o catholic_a epistle_n neither_o be_v this_o the_o censure_n of_o cusanus_fw-la only_o but_o 70._o contius_n a_o learned_a canonist_n in_o his_o annotation_n upon_o gratian_n fear_v not_o to_o pronounce_v all_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o live_v before_o sylvester_n to_o be_v false_a and_o counterfeit_a beside_o these_o censure_n of_o learned_a man_n there_o want_v not_o strong_a and_o effectual_a reason_n to_o disprove_v these_o epistle_n for_o first_o they_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o be_v counterfeit_a because_o they_o be_v barbarous_o and_o rude_o write_v and_o be_v not_o like_o the_o write_n of_o those_o man_n that_o live_v in_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o suppose_a author_n of_o those_o epistle_n do_v live_v but_o like_o the_o write_n of_o such_o as_o live_v in_o late_a and_o worse_a time_n after_o barbarism_n have_v prevail_v and_o overflow_v all_o second_o because_o the_o style_n be_v so_o different_a from_o those_o indubitate_a remainder_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n find_v in_o pammelij_fw-la cyprian_a 42._o eusebius_n and_o 2._o athanasius_n that_o they_o can_v be_v but_o counterfeit_n for_o whosoever_o shall_v compare_v they_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o differ_v as_o much_o as_o gold_n and_o dross_n three_o for_o that_o all_o these_o suppose_a epistle_n be_v so_o like_o one_o another_o in_o style_n and_o oftentimes_o have_v the_o very_a same_o sentence_n that_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a they_o come_v all_o from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o forge_n four_o because_o neither_o eusebius_n hierome_n nor_o any_o other_o ancient_a writer_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o they_o five_o because_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o old_a translation_n in_o their_o allegation_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o of_o hierome_n which_o be_v not_o in_o be_v in_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o suppose_a author_n of_o these_o epistle_n do_v live_v last_o which_o be_v the_o reason_n before_o use_v by_o clem._n cusanus_fw-la because_o the_o epistle_n to_o james_n write_v after_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n as_o appear_z in_o the_o front_n of_o it_o and_o so_o consequent_o after_o the_o twelve_o year_n of_o nero_n can_v not_o be_v write_v to_o james_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o as_o jacobo_n hierome_n testify_v be_v slay_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o seven_o year_n of_o nero._n but_o whatsoever_o become_v of_o the_o censure_n of_o learned_a man_n brand_a these_o epistle_n with_o the_o note_n of_o forgery_n and_o the_o reason_n bring_v to_o disprove_v they_o which_o can_v easy_o be_v answer_v yet_o bellarmine_n will_v prove_v that_o these_o epistle_n be_v mention_v by_o the_o ancient_a and_o consequent_o that_o the_o finem_fw-la centurie-writer_n say_v untrue_o that_o hardly_o any_o shall_v be_v find_v before_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a that_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o produce_v isidore_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o collection_n of_o the_o counsel_n affirm_v that_o he_o gather_v canon_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o eighty_o bishop_n but_o this_o be_v to_o justify_v one_o counterfeit_a by_o another_o for_o this_o preface_n be_v think_v to_o be_v counterfeit_a because_o in_o it_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n under_o agatho_n whereas_o isidore_n be_v dead_a forty_o year_n before_o the_o hold_n of_o that_o council_n wherefore_o he_o allege_v the_o council_n of_o vase_n as_o mention_v the_o same_o decretal_n but_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n be_v uncertain_a as_o 2._o binnius_n note_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a confusion_n that_o be_v find_v in_o they_o and_o true_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o can_v make_v any_o sense_n of_o that_o which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o clement_n epistle_n by_o that_o
council_n therefore_o in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o add_v ruffinus_n who_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o recognition_n of_o clemens_n out_o of_o greek_a speak_v of_o a_o epistle_n of_o clement_n unto_o james_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o say_v he_o turn_v it_o out_o of_o greek_a into_o latin_a and_o this_o say_v bellarmime_n which_o we_o have_v be_v undoubted_o the_o same_o that_o he_o translate_v as_o may_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o virorum_fw-la gennadius_n therefore_o the_o epistle_n that_o be_v now_o carry_v about_o under_o the_o the_o name_n of_o clemens_n be_v ancient_a and_o not_o late_a or_o counterfeit_n but_o that_o these_o philistine_n may_v fall_v by_o their_o own_o sword_n we_o will_v oppose_v against_o bellarmine_n the_o cardinal_n baronius_n the_o cardinal_n against_o the_o roman_a reader_n of_o controversy_n the_o roman_a annalist_n for_o 6._o baronius_n prove_v out_o of_o jacobum_fw-la gennadius_n who_o bellarmine_n allege_v that_o these_o epistle_n we_o have_v be_v not_o the_o same_o that_o ruffinus_n translate_v because_o those_o he_o translate_v have_v preface_v before_o they_o but_o this_o of_o clement_n have_v none_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n prove_v nothing_o because_o they_o be_v counterfeit_a of_o they_o that_o be_v write_v by_o such_o as_o live_v after_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n i_o shall_v have_v a_o fit_n opportunity_n to_o speak_v in_o another_o place_n wherefore_o let_v we_o come_v to_o those_o of_o the_o middle_a rank_n where_o bellarmine_n produce_v twelve_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n claim_v that_o supreme_a absolute_a and_o command_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o we_o deny_v the_o first_o of_o the_o twelve_o be_v julius_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n extant_a in_o the_o second_o apology_n of_o athanasius_n the_o witness_n be_v good_a and_o we_o will_v not_o except_v against_o he_o but_o he_o depose_v direct_o against_o they_o that_o produce_v he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o better_a evidence_n to_o be_v desire_v than_o this_o his_o epistle_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n have_v write_v to_o julius_n and_o blame_v he_o for_o communicate_v with_o such_o as_o they_o reject_v &_o go_v about_o to_o reverse_v the_o act_n which_o they_o have_v agree_v on_o and_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o greatness_n of_o city_n make_v not_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o great_a and_o that_o therefore_o he_o shall_v not_o take_v on_o he_o to_o be_v great_a than_o other_o bishop_n and_o to_o undo_v that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v because_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o a_o great_a city_n than_o any_o of_o they_o be_v he_o answer_v modest_o in_o this_o his_o epistle_n that_o he_o hope_v he_o offend_v not_o in_o desire_v they_o to_o come_v to_o a_o synod_n that_o therein_o their_o proceed_n may_v be_v examine_v see_v the_o nicene_n council_n appoint_v the_o act_n of_o one_o counecll_n to_o be_v reëxamine_v in_o another_o second_o he_o show_v that_o they_o who_o they_o send_v to_o inform_v he_o &_o the_o western_a bishop_n touch_v their_o proceed_n against_o athanasius_n be_v convict_v by_o the_o presbyter_n of_o athanasius_n desire_v he_o to_o call_v a_o council_n of_o his_o own_o bishop_n and_o to_o write_v to_o athanasius_n and_o those_o of_o eusebius_n part_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o same_o wherein_o they_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o shall_v prove_v the_o thing_n they_o have_v allege_v three_o he_o show_v that_o if_o without_o the_o solicitation_n of_o their_o agent_n he_o have_v desire_v they_o to_o meet_v in_o council_n it_o have_v be_v no_o fault_n nor_o any_o way_n prejudicial_a unto_o they_o four_o that_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v their_o proceed_n reëxamine_v contemn_v counsel_n by_o admit_v such_o as_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n that_o athanasius_n be_v not_o condemn_v at_o tyrus_n that_o he_o be_v not_o present_v when_o he_o be_v condemn_v at_o mareotta_n and_o that_o many_o write_v in_o his_o defence_n to_o he_o &_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n &_o that_o yet_o he_o d_v nothing_o but_o will_v have_v have_v matter_n define_v in_o a_o council_n five_o he_o show_v that_o though_o he_o write_v alone_o yet_o he_o report_v not_o his_o own_o opinion_n only_o but_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o country_n thereabouts_o last_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o bishop_n they_o proceed_v against_o be_v no_o vulgar_a person_n but_o bishop_n of_o such_o church_n as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o plant_v before_o they_o have_v proceed_v against_o they_o they_o shall_v first_o have_v write_v to_o he_o and_o his_o colleague_n that_o from_o thence_o may_v have_v be_v define_v what_o be_v right_a and_o good_a than_o which_o course_n what_o can_v be_v more_o fit_v for_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o the_o second_o see_v with_o other_o his_o adherent_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o bishop_n of_o a_o inferior_a rank_n especial_o in_o a_o matter_n concern_v the_o faith_n without_o first_o consult_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v &_o his_o colleague_n that_o from_o thence_o a_o action_n of_o such_o consequence_n may_v take_v beginning_n and_o therefore_o julius_n right_o tell_v the_o oriental_a bishop_n that_o in_o their_o rash_a proceed_n against_o so_o great_a &_o worthy_a a_o bishop_n as_o be_v athanasius_n they_o have_v offend_v against_o the_o ordination_n of_o paul_n that_o the_o father_n have_v not_o teach_v they_o so_o to_o do_v and_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v otherwise_o from_o bless_a peter_n here_o be_v nothing_o find_v for_o any_o thing_n i_o see_v that_o any_o way_n prove_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v a_o supreme_a command_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n for_o he_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n he_o challenge_v not_o the_o right_a of_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n either_o by_o himself_o alone_o or_o with_o his_o synod_n of_o western_a bishop_n much_o less_o derive_v the_o claim_n of_o any_o such_o right_n from_o peter_n as_o the_o jesuite_n untrue_o misreport_v the_o matter_n but_o think_v that_o the_o final_a and_o supreme_a judge_v of_o they_o pertain_v to_o a_o general_a council_n the_o next_o allegation_n be_v out_o of_o a_o 9_o epistle_n of_o damasus_n wherein_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n he_o commend_v they_o that_o they_o give_v due_a reverence_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o call_v they_o son_n to_o what_o purpose_n this_o allegation_n serve_v i_o know_v not_o for_o if_o any_o man_n do_v think_v it_o consequent_a that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o universal_a command_a power_n over_o all_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n yield_v a_o kind_n of_o due_a respect_n and_o reverence_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a that_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o colleague_n for_o that_o it_o be_v in_o order_n and_o honour_v the_o first_o see_v he_o be_v great_o deceive_v and_o may_v be_v confute_v out_o of_o the_o 10._o epistle_n of_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n in_o answer_n whereof_o damasus_n write_v for_o they_o write_v unto_o he_o not_o as_o to_o their_o lord_n and_o commander_n but_o as_o to_o their_o brother_n and_o colleague_n and_o direct_v not_o their_o letter_n to_o he_o only_o but_o to_o he_o and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n their_o epistle_n begin_v in_o this_o sort_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o colleague_n damasus_n ambrose_n britto_n valerianus_n acholius_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n assemble_v in_o the_o great_a city_n of_o rome_n where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o howsoever_o damasus_n call_v they_o son_n as_o be_v bishop_n of_o mean_a place_n &_o inferior_a see_v yet_o they_o call_v he_o brother_n and_o colleague_n as_o be_v equal_a in_o office_n and_o power_n though_o inferior_a in_o order_n and_o honour_n beside_o this_o they_o refuse_v to_o come_v to_o rome_n though_o earnest_o entreat_v by_o damasus_n so_o to_o do_v but_o stay_v at_o constantinople_n and_o there_o hold_v a_o council_n wherein_o they_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o eunomian_o &_o macedonian_n ordain_v sundry_a bishop_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n nectarius_n flavianus_n and_o cyrill_n they_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n a_o patriarch_n and_o set_v he_o in_o degree_n of_o honour_n next_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n these_o ordination_n 1._o of_o nectarius_n and_o flavianus_n especial_o damasus_n like_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v force_v to_o give_v way_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n be_v but_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o in_o number_n the_o name_n
the_o better_a to_o persuade_v we_o of_o the_o same_o our_o adversary_n bring_v the_o say_n of_o some_o great_a divine_n who_o conceive_v that_o some_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v infer_v out_o of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o dream_v of_o as_o galliae_fw-la lucius_z benign_a felix_n and_o conc_fw-fr mark_v ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o great_a light_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o time_n if_o they_o can_v indeed_o bring_v we_o the_o judgement_n and_o resolution_n of_o these_o ancient_a bishop_n they_o will_v doubtless_o great_o prevail_v with_o us._n but_o see_v under_o these_o name_n they_o bring_v forth_o unto_o we_o the_o author_n of_o shameless_a forgery_n we_o be_v thereby_o induce_v more_o to_o dislike_v their_o conceit_n then_o before_o now_o that_o they_o who_o mask_v under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o ancient_a roman_a bishop_n magnify_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o plead_v for_o the_o not_o err_v of_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o ignorant_a author_n of_o absurd_a and_o shameless_a forgery_n it_o will_v easy_o appear_v out_o of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v 4._o elsewhere_o large_o discourse_v to_o show_v that_o the_o epistle_n attribute_v to_o the_o ancient_a pope_n be_v forge_v and_o counterfeit_a not_o only_o by_o the_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o best_a learned_a on_o both_o side_n so_o censure_v they_o but_o by_o many_o reason_n induce_v we_o so_o to_o think_v among_o which_o one_o be_v the_o likeness_n of_o the_o stile_n find_v in_o these_o epistle_n argue_v that_o they_o come_v all_o out_o of_o the_o same_o mint_n and_o be_v not_o write_v by_o those_o different_a pope_n live_v at_o diverse_a time_n to_o who_o they_o be_v attribute_v which_o similitude_n of_o stile_n will_v be_v find_v in_o these_o epistle_n that_o our_o adversary_n allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v as_o much_o or_o more_o than_o in_o any_o other_o for_o in_o these_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o very_a same_o word_n the_o agree_v of_o witness_n in_o the_o same_o substance_n of_o matter_n with_o some_o difference_n of_o word_n argue_v that_o they_o speak_v true_o but_o their_o precise_a agreement_n in_o word_n and_o form_n of_o speak_v argue_v rather_o a_o compact_n and_o agreement_n to_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n than_o a_o desire_n to_o utter_v the_o truth_n so_o here_o the_o precise_a use_v of_o the_o very_a same_o word_n by_o all_o these_o pope_n live_v at_o diverse_a time_n argue_v that_o it_o be_v one_o man_n that_o teach_v they_o all_o to_o speak_v but_o they_o will_v say_v pope_n leo_n in_o his_o three_o sermon_n of_o his_o assumption_n to_o the_o popedom_n say_v as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v and_o that_o therefore_o we_o may_v not_o discredit_v their_o testimony_n sure_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o leo_n say_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o former_a pope_n be_v teach_v to_o say_v we_o will_v most_o willing_o listen_v unto_o they_o for_o we_o acknowledge_v leo_n to_o have_v be_v a_o most_o worthy_a bishop_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o go_v under_o his_o name_n to_o be_v his_o indubitate_a work_n let_v we_o hear_v therefore_o what_o he_o say_v his_o word_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o cardinal_n be_v these_o christ_n take_v special_a care_n of_o peter_n and_o pray_v special_o for_o he_o because_o the_o state_n of_o the_o rest_n be_v more_o secure_a when_o the_o mind_n of_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a be_v not_o overcome_v in_o peter_n therefore_o the_o strength_n of_o all_o be_v sure_o establish_v and_o god_n do_v so_o dispense_v the_o help_n of_o his_o divine_a grace_n that_o the_o same_o firmness_n that_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n be_v by_o peter_n confer_v and_o bestow_v on_o all_o here_o be_v nothing_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v which_o be_v that_o our_o adversary_n undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v nor_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v err_v which_o be_v that_o the_o former_a pope_n affirm_v in_o their_o counterfeit_a epistle_n but_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o rest_n be_v more_o secure_a when_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a be_v not_o overcome_v which_o no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v of_o and_o that_o christ_n give_v or_o at_o least_o promise_v to_o give_v that_o assistance_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o peter_n which_o he_o mean_v to_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o pass_v it_o by_o he_o unto_o they_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v receive_v it_o after_o he_o but_o not_o from_o he_o for_o thus_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n must_v be_v understand_v see_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a which_o thing_n also_o 11._o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v their_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o their_o commission_n or_o authority_n immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o not_o from_o peter_n from_o leo_n they_o pass_v to_o agatho_n who_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n read_v and_o approve_v in_o the_o six_o general_a 4._o council_n say_v that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n such_o have_v be_v the_o felicity_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v err_v from_o the_o path_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n nor_o to_o have_v fall_v be_v deprave_a with_o heretical_a novelty_n but_o the_o same_o faith_n it_o receive_v at_o first_o it_o hold_v still_o according_a to_o christ_n promise_n which_o he_o make_v to_o peter_n will_v he_o to_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n which_o thing_n say_v agatho_n my_o predecessor_n have_v ever_o do_v as_o be_v well_o know_v to_o all_o these_o word_n of_o agatho_n be_v not_o so_o far_o to_o be_v urge_v as_o if_o simple_o never_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v fail_v to_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ever_o so_o preserve_v from_o heresy_n that_o howsoever_o some_o few_o in_o it_o for_o a_o time_n may_v neglect_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n yet_o neither_o so_o long_o nor_o in_o such_o sort_n but_o that_o that_o church_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o it_o be_v always_o a_o stay_n to_o the_o rest_n in_o all_o the_o dangerous_a trial_n that_o fall_v out_o in_o ancient_a time_n even_o as_o in_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o two_o will_n of_o christ_n about_o which_o the_o council_n be_v call_v it_o be_v wherein_o though_o honorius_n fail_v yet_o the_o rest_n that_o govern_v the_o apostolical_a throne_n with_o he_o do_v not_o and_o agatho_n who_o soon_o after_o succeed_v show_v himself_o a_o orthodox_n and_o right_a believer_n for_o that_o all_o the_o predecessor_n of_o agatho_n do_v not_o always_o confirm_v their_o brethren_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o that_o marcellinus_n sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o sinuessani_fw-la romish_a story_n and_o be_v force_v be_v convict_v thereof_o to_o profess_v himself_o unworthy_a of_o the_o papal_a office_n and_o dignity_n in_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n in_o that_o liberij_fw-la liberius_n and_o felix_n communicate_v with_o heretic_n and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o unjust_a condemnation_n of_o worthy_a athanasius_n which_o be_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o brethren_n but_o to_o discourage_v dishearten_v and_o weaken_v they_o and_o in_o that_o 4._o agatho_n himself_o do_v anathematise_v his_o predecessor_n honorius_n as_o a_o monothelite_n with_o who_o leo_n the_o second_o concur_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n who_o anathematise_v theodorus_n syrus_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n and_o other_o monothelite_n add_v to_o they_o honorius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o predecessor_n say_v we_o accurse_v also_o honorius_n who_o do_v not_o lighten_v this_o apostolical_a church_n with_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o seek_v to_o subvert_v the_o undefiled_a faith_n by_o profane_a perfidiousness_n with_o who_o also_o pope_n adrian_n agree_v who_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n call_v about_o the_o business_n of_o photius_n of_o constantinople_n say_v that_o 7._o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v judge_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o church_n but_o that_o we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o one_o that_o have_v judge_v he_o for_o though_o honorius_n be_v accurse_v after_o his_o death_n by_o those_o of_o the_o east_n yet_o it_o be_v because_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o heresy_n in_o which_o only_a case_n the_o lesser_a may_v judge_v the_o great_a yet_o even_o there_o it_o have_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o of_o they_o to_o give_v sentence_n against_o he_o have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o first_o see_v con●…ilij_fw-la go_v before_o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o epistle_n of_o agatho_n do_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v let_v we_o therefore_o consider_v whether_o they_o have_v any_o better_a proof_n nicholas_n the_o first_o say_v bellarmine_n in_o
whereupon_o there_o grow_v great_a question_n with_o much_o scandal_n some_o affirm_v that_o his_o consecration_n and_o the_o consecration_n of_o such_o as_o he_o ordain_v be_v void_a other_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v think_v of_o formosus_fw-la yet_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o bishoply_n office_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o those_o he_o ordain_v their_o ordination_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o good_a especial_o see_v he_o be_v absolve_v from_o his_o perjury_n by_o martinus_n the_o pope_n the_o next_o pope_n save_o one_o that_o succeed_v formosus_fw-la be_v stephen_n who_o sit_v but_o four_o month_n yet_o be_v not_o idle_a but_o though_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o anagnia_n by_o he_o persecute_v he_o with_o deadly_a hate_n and_o pronounce_v the_o ordination_n of_o all_o such_o as_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o be_v void_a after_o he_o succeed_v romanus_n and_o after_o romanus_n theodorus_n who_o be_v contrary_o mind_v to_o stephen_n reconcile_v those_o who_o stephen_n have_v degrade_v but_o presume_v not_o to_o consecrate_v or_o ordain_v they_o again_o after_o theodorus_n follow_v john_n who_o to_o confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o formosus_fw-la pronounce_v void_a by_o stephen_n call_v a_o council_n of_o 72_o bishop_n the_o archbishop_n of_o france_n and_o the_o king_n be_v present_a and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o all_o cause_v the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n which_o stephen_n hold_v for_o condemnation_n of_o formosus_fw-la to_o be_v burn_v after_o john_n succeed_v benedictus_n and_o aftet_fw-la he_o sergius_n the_o deacon_n that_o miss_v the_o popedom_n when_o formosus_fw-la get_v it_o this_o sergius_n in_o revenge_n of_o his_o former_a repulse_n force_v the_o roman_n with_o threat_n and_o terror_n to_o account_v the_o ordination_n of_o formosus_fw-la void_a and_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v draw_v he_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n after_o he_o have_v rest_v in_o it_o a_o good_a space_n put_v upon_o he_o the_o papal_a vesture_n set_v he_o in_o peter_n chair_n command_v he_o to_o be_v behead_v and_o then_o cut_v off_o three_o of_o his_o finger_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o tiber_n degrade_n all_o that_o he_o have_v ordain_v here_o we_o see_v pope_n clear_o convince_v of_o heresy_n and_o define_v and_o decree_a for_o heresy_n for_o see_v formosus_fw-la be_v sometime_o undoubted_o a_o true_a bishop_n it_o be_v a_o error_n in_o faith_n to_o say_v that_o his_o ordination_n be_v void_a this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o 12._o bellarmine_n deny_v it_o not_o but_o say_v only_o that_o neither_o stephen_n nor_o sergius_n publish_v any_o decree_n that_o their_o ordination_n be_v void_a who_o formosus_fw-la have_v ordain_v and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v re-ordained_n but_o do_v only_o so_o re-ordaine_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la in_o their_o fury_n &_o distemper_a passion_n wherein_o he_o be_v clear_o refute_v by_o 902_o sigebert_n who_o say_v express_o that_o they_o decree_v omnes_fw-la ordinationes_fw-la eius_fw-la irritas_fw-la esse_fw-la debere_fw-la that_o be_v that_o all_o his_o ordination_n be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o repute_v for_o void_a to_o stephen_n and_o sergius_n we_o may_v add_v caelestinus_n the_o three_o who_o as_o 4._o alfonsus_n á_o castro_n true_o affirm_v can_v by_o any_o mean_n be_v excuse_v from_o heresy_n in_o that_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o bond_n of_o marriage_n be_v so_o dissolve_v by_o heresy_n that_o he_o who_o wife_n fall_v into_o heresy_n may_v lawful_o leave_v she_o and_o take_v another_o this_o decree_n of_o caelestinus_n be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o decretal_n but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a &_o alfonsus_n profess_v he_o read_v it_o infidelium_fw-la there_o himself_o now_o that_o it_o be_v heretical_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o divortijs_fw-la innocentius_n the_o three_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o the_o 5._o council_n of_o trent_n define_v otherwise_o neither_o do_v bellarmine_n answer_n that_o he_o do_v not_o pass_v any_o decree_n but_o only_o deliver_v his_o own_o private_a opinion_n help_v the_o matter_n for_o 2._o gratian_n make_v the_o decretal_n equal_a in_o authority_n with_o the_o canon_n of_o counsel_n and_o our_o adversary_n be_v wont_a to_o prove_v the_o pope_n power_n by_o his_o decretal_n as_o if_o all_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o and_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o to_o who_o he_o write_v they_o the_o next_o pope_n that_o be_v charge_v with_o heresy_n be_v nicholas_n the_o four_o who_o sexto_fw-la define_v that_o christ_n teach_v both_o by_o word_n and_o example_n most_o perfect_a poverty_n consist_v in_o the_o abandon_v of_o all_o propriety_n in_o thing_n and_o right_a or_o claim_v to_o they_o either_o in_o particular_a or_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a college_n &_o company_n of_o man_n live_v together_o and_o that_o such_o poverty_n be_v please_v to_o god_n and_o meritorious_a for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v distinguish_v the_o use_n of_o thing_n and_o the_o propriety_n in_o they_o or_o right_a &_o claim_v to_o they_o 2._o the_o propriety_n in_o thing_n and_o the_o right_a and_o claim_v to_o they_o be_v twofold_a either_o absolute_a when_o man_n may_v judicial_o challenge_v a_o thing_n as_o their_o own_o and_o use_v it_o how_o &_o in_o what_o sort_n they_o will_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n or_o restrain_v and_o limit_v as_o clergyman_n may_v challenge_v the_o possession_n &_o land_n belong_v to_o they_o &_o judicial_o recover_v they_o if_o they_o be_v withheld_a from_o they_o yet_o may_v they_o not_o so_o free_o dispose_v of_o they_o as_o layman_n may_v of_o they_o the_o use_n of_o thing_n be_v twofold_a for_o there_o be_v usus_fw-la juris_fw-la &_o usus_fw-la facti_fw-la usus_fw-la facti_fw-la be_v when_o one_o have_v the_o use_n of_o a_o thing_n but_o so_o that_o he_o have_v no_o right_a to_o use_v it_o warrantable_a by_o any_o positive_a or_o humane_a law_n &_o if_o any_o one_o will_v deprive_v he_o of_o it_o he_o can_v by_o law_n hinder_v he_o usus_fw-la juris_fw-la be_v the_o right_a one_o have_v to_o use_v a_o thing_n leave_v the_o claim_n of_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o to_o the_o owner_n thereof_o this_o kind_n of_o use_n be_v likewise_o twofold_a nudus_fw-la and_o usus-fructus_a the_o former_a be_v when_o one_o have_v right_a to_o use_v a_o thing_n but_o so_o limit_v and_o restrain_v that_o he_o may_v neither_o sell_v let_v nor_o give_v the_o same_o right_n the_o late_a when_o he_o may_v the_o franciscan_a friar_n imagine_v the_o height_n of_o christian_a perfection_n to_o consist_v in_o extreme_a poverty_n by_o their_o vow_n of_o poverty_n abandon_v not_o only_o in_o particular_a as_o do_v other_o religious_a but_o in_o general_a even_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o whole_a company_n and_o society_n all_o interest_n right_a and_o claim_v to_o land_n live_n and_o possession_n or_o to_o the_o use_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n leave_v nothing_o to_o themselves_o but_o the_o bare_a use_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o by_o free_a gift_n beg_v or_o labour_n come_v to_o their_o hand_n without_o all_o right_a to_o use_v they_o pleadable_a and_o justifiable_a by_o any_o course_n of_o humane_a law_n so_o that_o if_o any_o one_o will_v take_v the_o bread_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n before_o it_o come_v to_o their_o mouth_n or_o the_o clothes_n from_o they_o wherewith_o they_o hide_v their_o nakedness_n they_o may_v not_o complain_v of_o he_o for_o so_o do_v nor_o prosecute_v any_o suit_n against_o he_o for_o it_o this_o kind_n of_o poverty_n pope_n nicholas_n affirm_v christ_n teach_v both_o by_o word_n and_o example_n and_o will_v the_o franciscanes_n according_a to_o their_o rule_n strict_o to_o observe_v the_o same_o and_o for_o their_o safety_n and_o security_n take_v order_n that_o all_o movable_n give_v to_o they_o for_o use_v shall_v in_o respect_n of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o likewise_o their_o oratory_n and_o cemitery_n but_o their_o dwelling_n not_o so_o unless_o the_o giver_n express_v a_o absolute_a gift_n which_o yet_o must_v not_o be_v to_o the_o friar_n but_o to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n express_o accept_v the_o same_o for_o otherwise_o the_o owner_n may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n take_v they_o away_o again_o farther_o he_o order_v that_o such_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v give_v to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v the_o use_n of_o they_o may_v either_o of_o themselves_o change_v they_o for_o such_o other_o thing_n as_o they_o need_v or_o desire_n or_o cause_v the_o governor_n and_o disposer_n of_o they_o appoint_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o sell_v they_o and_o with_o the_o money_n to_o buy_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o need_v and_o let_v they_o have_v the_o use_n of_o they_o as_o book_n and_o the_o
ten_o to_o be_v judicial_a fit_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o that_o people_n and_o neither_o moral_a nor_o ceremonial_a &_o yet_o say_v that_o as_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o that_o state_n and_o by_o that_o people_n figure_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v afterward_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v so_o this_o pay_v of_o the_o ten_o of_o that_o each_o man_n possess_v though_o it_o be_v a_o judicial_a constitution_n and_o not_o ceremonial_a yet_o figure_v the_o perfect_a of_o all_o thing_n by_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o in_o that_o the_o number_n of_o ten_o be_v the_o uttermost_a extent_n and_o perfection_n of_o number_n beyond_o which_o no_o man_n go_v in_o number_v by_o give_v the_o ten_o part_n that_o signify_v perfection_n to_o god_n and_o keep_v nine_a express_v imperfection_n to_o themselves_o they_o profess_v their_o own_o want_n defect_n and_o imperfection_n and_o the_o desire_n hope_v and_o expectation_n they_o have_v that_o god_n in_o who_o only_a perfection_n be_v find_v will_v in_o his_o good_a time_n perfect_a all_o thing_n by_o christ_n his_o son_n how_o apt_o these_o thing_n be_v deliver_v by_o thomas_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_v there_o be_v other_o that_o likewise_o insist_v on_o the_o number_n of_o ten_o as_o be_v the_o uttermost_a extent_n of_o number_n but_o to_o another_o purpose_n for_o they_o say_v in_o that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o he_o the_o ten_o of_o all_o that_o they_o possess_v which_o be_v the_o uttermost_a bind_v and_o extent_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n they_o have_v they_o do_v thereby_o express_v the_o desire_n they_o have_v that_o this_o ten_o part_n as_o be_v the_o bound_n and_o limit_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o a_o sort_n include_v within_o it_o shall_v sanctify_v the_o rest_n and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o blessing_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o wall_n of_o defence_n for_o the_o safe-keeping_a of_o the_o rest_n and_o yet_o neither_o thomas_n nor_o these_o make_v the_o pay_v of_o the_o ten_o to_o be_v ceremonial_a in_o respect_n of_o these_o signification_n for_o then_o no_o such_o custom_n may_v be_v use_v among_o christian_n as_o some_o ignorant_a man_n have_v teach_v in_o our_o age_n out_o of_o this_o false_a conceit_n but_o thomas_n suppose_v the_o pay_v of_o the_o ten_o in_o the_o particular_a determination_n to_o be_v judicial_a and_o the_o other_o think_v it_o natural_a and_o perpetual_a for_o say_v they_o see_v something_o be_v to_o be_v yield_v to_o god_n out_o of_o that_o which_o we_o have_v and_o the_o number_n of_o ten_o be_v the_o bind_v of_o all_o the_o thing_n we_o have_v or_o can_v have_v at_o least_o one_o of_o ten_o be_v to_o be_v pay_v unto_o god_n for_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o obligation_n unto_o he_o and_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o service_n and_o those_o that_o attend_v the_o same_o for_o if_o we_o may_v pass_v the_o number_n of_o ten_o which_o be_v the_o bind_v of_o our_o possession_n and_o yield_v no_o one_o part_n thereof_o as_o a_o acknowledgement_n to_o god_n we_o need_v not_o to_o pay_v any_o thing_n to_o he_o at_o all_o this_o opinion_n be_v strong_o confirm_v in_o that_o 20_o abraham_n pay_v tithe_v to_o melchizedech_n who_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n and_o bless_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o that_o he_o possess_v before_o any_o law_n write_v or_o any_o particular_a prescriptionthat_v we_o read_v of_o touch_v the_o same_o whereby_o he_o show_v as_o it_o may_v more_o than_o probable_o be_v conclude_v that_o tithe_n be_v due_a by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n neither_o do_v abraham_n only_o by_o his_o fact_n show_v the_o natural_a duty_n of_o pay_v tithe_n but_o jacob_n also_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o vow_n he_o make_v that_o if_o god_n will_v prosper_v his_o journey_n and_o bring_v he_o back_o in_o safety_n the_o lord_n shall_v be_v his_o god_n and_o 22._o he_o will_v offer_v unto_o he_o the_o ten_o of_o all_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v he_o but_o some_o man_n perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o this_o vow_n of_o jacob_n prove_v rather_o the_o contrary_n namely_o that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o pay_v tithe_n for_o man_n do_v vow_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v unto_o by_o any_o general_a law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n and_o therefore_o cardinal_n 25._o bellarmine_n say_v it_o have_v be_v a_o impious_a thing_n for_o jacob_n in_o this_o conditional_a sort_n to_o have_v vow_v the_o pay_v of_o tithe_n if_o by_o the_o general_a law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n he_o have_v be_v bind_v thereunto_o but_o sure_o this_o say_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v impious_a and_o injurious_a to_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n who_o never_o be_v charge_v with_o any_o impiety_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o his_o vow_n neither_o can_v be_v as_o i_o suppose_v and_o yet_o necessary_o must_v be_v if_o this_o inference_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v good_a for_o it_o be_v the_o first_o commandment_n in_o the_o law_n natural_a and_o moral_a thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o i_o and_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n be_v bind_v by_o a_o general_a obligation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o take_v the_o lord_n for_o his_o god_n and_o yet_o he_o vow_v conditional_o that_o if_o the_o lod_n will_v be_v with_o he_o keep_v he_o in_o his_o journey_n and_o bring_v he_o safe_a back_n again_o 21._o he_o shall_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o will_v serve_v he_o which_o if_o the_o cardinal_n say_v true_a he_o can_v not_o do_v without_o impiety_n but_o less_o we_o pass_v by_o this_o oversight_n and_o see_v what_o be_v to_o be_v resolve_v touch_v this_o point_n it_o seem_v by_o the_o fact_n of_o abraham_n and_o vow_v of_o jacob_n before_o the_o law_n by_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o same_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o christian_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o duty_n of_o pay_v tithe_n be_v natural_a and_o perpetual_a numeros_fw-la how_o do_v our_o righteousness_n say_v origen_n exceed_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n if_o whereas_o they_o do_v not_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n before_o they_o offer_v the_o firstfruit_n to_o god_n and_o set_v out_o the_o tithe_n for_o the_o levite_n we_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o so_o use_v or_o rather_o abuse_v the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o ut_fw-la sacerdos_n nesciat_fw-la levita_n ignoret_fw-la altar_n non_fw-la sentiat_fw-la that_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o priest_n shall_v not_o know_v of_o it_o the_o levite_n shall_v never_o hear_v of_o it_o and_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n never_o feel_v it_o or_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o it_o saint_n 3_o hierome_n say_v quod_fw-la de_fw-la decimis_fw-la primitiisque_fw-la diximus_fw-la quae_fw-la olim_fw-la dabantur_fw-la à_fw-la populo_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la &_o levitis_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quoque_fw-la populis_fw-la intelligite_fw-la quibus_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la decimas_fw-la &_o primitias_fw-la dare_v sed_fw-la &_o vendere_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la habent_fw-la &_o dare_v pauperibus_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la facere_fw-la nolumus_fw-la saltem_fw-la judaeorum_n imitemur_fw-la exordia_fw-la &_o pauperibus_fw-la partem_fw-la demus_fw-la ex_fw-la toto_fw-la &_o sacerdotibus_fw-la &_o levitis_fw-la honorem_fw-la debitum_fw-la deferamus_fw-la quod_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la fecerit_fw-la deum_fw-la fraudare_fw-la &_o supplantare_fw-la convincitur_fw-la that_o be_v understand_v that_o which_o i_o say_v of_o tithe_n and_o firstfruit_n which_o of_o old_a be_v give_v by_o the_o people_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n concern_v the_o people_n of_o the_o church_n also_o who_o be_v command_v not_o only_o to_o give_v tithe_n and_o firstfruit_n but_o to_o sell_v away_o all_o that_o they_o have_v and_o to_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a which_o if_o we_o will_v not_o do_v at_o the_o least_o let_v we_o imitate_v those_o beginning_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o we_o may_v give_v a_o part_n of_o all_o to_o the_o poor_a and_o yield_v due_a honour_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n which_o who_o so_o do_v not_o be_v convince_v to_o defraud_v and_o deceive_v god_n here_o we_o see_v hierome_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o christian_n stand_v bind_v at_o least_o to_o perform_v as_o much_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o tithe_n and_o first_o fruit_n as_o the_o jew_n &_o that_o he_o make_v the_o not_o pay_v of_o tithe_n to_o be_v a_o sinful_a defraud_v of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o he_o add_v of_o sell_v all_o and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o mean_v general_o but_o only_o in_o some_o case_n that_o may_v fall_v out_o with_o hierome_n augustine_n or_o
have_v i_o no_o way_n wrong_v st_n augustine_n but_o do_v he_o the_o the_o great_a right_n i_o can_v for_o i_o have_v show_v that_o he_o impugn_a not_o only_o the_o error_n of_o origen_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o even_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o of_o such_o as_o think_v that_o all_o man_n or_o at_o least_o all_o christian_a man_n though_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v but_o of_o they_o also_o that_o think_v only_o that_o all_o right-beleeving_a christian_n shall_v be_v save_v how_o wicked_o soever_o they_o live_v affirm_v that_o no_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v yield_v and_o yet_o profess_v himself_o doubtful_a touch_a the_o mitigation_n and_o suspension_n of_o their_o pain_n for_o a_o time_n as_o also_o whether_o man_n die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o with_o some_o lesser_a sin_n be_v afflict_v for_o a_o time_n and_o after_o deliver_v so_o that_o he_o bring_v the_o conceit_n concern_v the_o salvation_n by_o fire_n and_o punishment_n of_o man_n depart_v hence_o in_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n from_o that_o exceed_a large_a extent_n to_o this_o strait_n assure_v himself_o more_o may_v not_o be_v yield_v and_o profess_v he_o know_v not_o whether_o so_o much_o might_n or_o not_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o limitation_n that_o the_o error_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o dangerous_a but_o not_o of_o the_o error_n itself_o touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n which_o no_o way_n tend_v to_o his_o disgrace_n but_o to_o his_o commendation_n but_o master_n higgon_n will_v prove_v 110._o that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o fall_v into_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o purgatory_n of_o man_n die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n first_o out_o of_o the_o magdeburgian_o and_o second_o out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o sundry_a father_n teach_v the_o same_o purgatory_n before_o augustine_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o the_o magdeburgian_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v in_o a_o word_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o purgatory_n of_o such_o as_o depart_v hence_o in_o mortal_a sin_n when_o they_o attribute_v the_o error_n of_o purgatory_n to_o origen_n and_o other_o before_o augustine_n time_n for_o origen_n make_v all_o punishment_n even_o those_o of_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a one_o to_o be_v but_o purgatory-punishment_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o say_v be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n wherefore_o let_v we_o see_v what_o testimony_n of_o father_n before_o augustine_n master_n higgon_n can_v produce_v for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o suppose_a purgatory_n the_o first_o he_o bring_v be_v saint_n 9_o basil_n who_o write_v upon_o those_o word_n of_o isaiah_n iniquity_n shall_v ●…ee_v burn_v as_o fire_n and_o devour_v of_o the_o fire_n as_o any_o grass_n and_o burn_v up_o in_o the_o thickness_n of_o the_o wood_n and_o again_o all_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v set_v on_o fire_n in_o the_o furious_a and_o fierce_a wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v burn_v by_o fire_n first_o show_v that_o iniquity_n may_v fit_o be_v compare_v unto_o grass_n the_o generation_n whereof_o be_v infinite_a in_o that_o sin_n beget_v and_o succee_v itself_o fornication_n fornication_n lie_v lie_v and_o so_o in_o the_o rest_n second_o that_o if_o we_o reveal_v and_o make_v bare_a our_o sin_n by_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v it_o we_o make_v it_o like_o dry_a grass_n fit_n to_o be_v devour_v and_o consume_v by_o the_o purge_a fire_n but_o that_o if_o it_o become_v not_o like_o dry_a grass_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v devour_v by_o the_o fire_n three_o he_o interprete_v the_o thickness_n of_o the_o wood_n to_o be_v man_n darken_v in_o their_o cogitation_n and_o keep_v many_o evil_n in_o the_o secret_a of_o their_o heart_n four_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v the_o earth_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n by_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o say_v the_o prophet_n mean_v that_o earthly_a thing_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o punish_a fire_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o soul_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o lord_n i_o come_v to_o send_v fire_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o my_o desire_n be_v that_o it_o be_v kindle_v assoon_o as_o may_v be_v five_o he_o show_v that_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o people_n shall_v be_v burn_v as_o with_o fire_n he_o threaten_v not_o destruction_n but_o promise_v purgation_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n if_o any_o man_n work_n burn_v etc._n etc._n here_o indeed_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o purging-fire_n but_o it_o be_v the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n in_o this_o world_n and_o of_o divine_a affection_n which_o it_o kindle_v for_o the_o consume_a and_o burn_v uppe_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o they_o that_o acknowledge_v they_o and_o make_v they_o bare_a by_o feeling_n &_o confess_v how_o displease_v they_o be_v to_o god_n whereas_o otherwise_o it_o work_v no_o such_o effect_n but_o here_o be_v no_o word_n nor_o circumstance_n whence_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o basil_n speak_v of_o any_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n nay_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o speak_v of_o that_o fire_n which_o christ_n come_v to_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n and_o to_o cast_v out_o upon_o the_o earth_n and_o which_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v kindle_v as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v which_o thing_n i_o think_v be_v not_o appliable_a to_o popish_a purgatory_n baptisma_fw-la the_o scripture_n say_v gregory_n nazianzen_n mention_v a_o purging-fire_n which_o christ_n come_v to_o send_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o himself_o anagogical_o be_v call_v fire_n the_o nature_n of_o this_o fire_n be_v to_o waste_v and_o consume_v away_o the_o grosser_n matter_n and_o vicious_a disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o therefore_o christ_n desire_v to_o have_v it_o kindle_v as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o which_o i_o think_v can_v hardly_o be_v understand_v of_o purgatory_n unless_o we_o suppose_v christ_n wish_v we_o all_o to_o be_v in_o those_o torment_n with_o speed_n nicetas_n write_v upon_o nazianzen_n expound_v the_o purging-fire_n he_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v love_n and_o faith_n towards_o god_n which_o purge_v our_o soul_n from_o sin_n and_o ignorance_n &_o divide_v the_o godly_a from_o the_o ungodly_a and_o unbeliever_n another_o fire_n nazianzen_n say_v there_o be_v which_o be_v not_o a_o purge_n but_o a_o revenge_a fire_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o sodomitical_a fire_n which_o mix_v with_o brimstone_n &_o tempest_n god_n pour_v on_o the_o head_n of_o sinner_n or_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o burn_v up_o his_o enemy_n on_o every_o side_n or_o last_o that_o which_o be_v more_o horrible_a than_o all_o these_o which_o be_v join_v with_o the_o restless_a worm_n and_o which_o never_o go_v out_o so_o that_o we_o see_v neither_o gregory_n nor_o nicetas_n know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o papist_n purgatory-fire_n after_o this_o life_n mention_v all_o the_o kind_n of_o fire_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o scripture_n and_o omit_v it_o clean_o to_o basill_n mr_n higgon_n add_v epiph._n eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la who_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o he_o but_o his_o own_o 11._o friend_n will_v tell_v he_o these_o homily_n which_o he_o cit_v that_o go_v under_o his_o name_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o that_o they_o be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o latin_a father_n by_o beda_n or_o some_o other_o the_o sentence_n doubtless_o which_o he_o cit_v be_v find_v word_n for_o word_n in_o augustine_n homily_n upon_o the_o epiphanie_n but_o howsoever_o the_o author_n of_o these_o homily_n seem_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o try_v fire_n through_o which_o all_o must_v pass_v &_o not_o of_o the_o papist_n imagine_v purgatory_n the_o next_o testimony_n he_o bring_v be_v out_o of_o gregory_n nyssen_n but_o as_o the_o grecian_n in_o their_o apology_n note_n they_o be_v not_o well_o advise_v that_o allege_v gregory_n nyssen_n to_o defunctis_fw-la this_o purpose_n see_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o a_o particular_a purge_n of_o some_o but_o of_o a_o general_a restore_n of_o all_o of_o which_o opinion_n also_o didymus_n and_o euagrius_n be_v this_o his_o gross_a error_n they_o excuse_v first_o for_o that_o happy_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v rois●…ed_v into_o his_o work_n by_o heretic_n and_o second_o for_o that_o he_o write_v before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o five_o general_n council_n wherein_o the_o error_n of_o origen_n be_v condemn_v from_o these_o greek_a father_n master_n higgon_n 11●…_n proceed_v to_o the_o latin_a and_o first_o produce_v ruffinus_n upon_o the_o psalm_n and_o then_o ambrose_n that_o ruffinus_n write_v upon_o the_o psalm_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o that_o of_o late_a one_o antonius_n de_fw-fr albone_n archbishop_n of_o
communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o sacrament_n into_o a_o private_a mass_n which_o indeed_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v proper_o be_v no_o mass_n or_o that_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o new_a real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n as_o the_o jesuited_a papist_n do_v at_o this_o day_n a_o sacrifice_n we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o bloody_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n &_o say_v that_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v name_v a_o sacrifice_n because_o sign_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sign_n as_o also_o for_o that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o sacrament_n a_o offering_n or_o present_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n to_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n that_o by_o it_o we_o may_v obtain_v grace_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o a_o new_a real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n we_o deny_v and_o think_v with_o luther_n that_o it_o be_v a_o hellish_a abomination_n so_o to_o do_v that_o gerson_n think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n do_v no_o more_o prejudice_n his_o be_v a_o worthy_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n than_o the_o error_n of_o cyprian_a and_o other_o beforementioned_a touch_v invocation_n of_o saint_n though_o he_o do_v not_o absolute_o condemn_v it_o yet_o sequ_o he_o reprehend_v the_o abuse_n and_o superstitious_a observation_n then_o prevail_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n very_o bitter_o as_o i_o show_v before_o &_o seek_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o piety_n in_o that_o point_n than_o be_v ordinary_o find_v among_o man_n in_o those_o time_n the_o like_a he_o do_v for_o indulgentiis_fw-la indulgence_n restrain_v they_o more_o than_o be_v please_v to_o the_o pope_n faction_n and_o for_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n howsoever_o he_o think_v the_o church_n may_v lawful_o prescribe_v the_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n alone_o which_o we_o can_v excuse_v yet_o he_o specie_fw-la acknowledge_v that_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v ancient_o use_v and_o that_o when_o it_o may_v be_v have_v with_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v but_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v master_n higgon_n allege_v these_o thing_n shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o and_o he_o to_o repute_n john_n gerson_n a_o worthy_a and_o godly_a man_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o general_n counsel_n that_o he_o meddle_v with_o thing_n no_o way_n pertain_v to_o he_o when_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o dispose_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n that_o all_o our_o inherent_a righteousness_n be_v imperfect_a and_o as_o the_o pollute_a rag_n of_o a_o menstruous_a woman_n that_o all_o sin_n be_v by_o nature_n mortal_a and_o the_o like_a and_o may_v not_o we_o take_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n a_o good_a man_n and_o one_o that_o desire_v the_o reformation_n of_o thing_n amiss_o notwithstanding_o his_o error_n in_o some_o thing_n and_o his_o not_o discern_v all_o that_o be_v amiss_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o this_o allegation_n it_o seem_v master_n higgon_n himself_o perceive_v and_o therefore_o say_v 4._o he_o will_v come_v to_o the_o supreme_a difference_n to_o which_o all_o other_o point_n as_o he_o conceive_v be_v subordinate_a and_o inferior_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sovereign_a primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o bring_v two_o very_a effectual_a testimony_n as_o he_o think_v of_o gerson_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n sovereign_a primacy_n the_o first_o be_v out_o of_o his_o book_n 8._o de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o form_n of_o civil_a government_n be_v subject_a to_o mutability_n and_o alteration_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o church_n for_o her_o government_n be_v monarchical_a and_o be_v so_o appoint_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n if_o any_o man_n will_v violate_v this_o sacred_a ordinance_n and_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o his_o contempt_n he_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o heretic_n as_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n and_o some_o other_o consort_a with_o his_o fancy_n the_o second_o be_v out_o of_o his_o tract_n 3_o de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la graecorum_n where_o prescribe_v many_o direction_n for_o the_o compose_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n he_o lay_v it_o down_o as_o a_o foundation_n that_o there_o must_v be_v one_o head_n on_o earth_n unto_o which_o all_o man_n must_v be_v unite_v 5._o in_o these_o say_n master_n higgon_n say_v gerson_n show_v himself_o a_o worthy_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n and_o a_o singular_a enemy_n of_o the_o protestanticall_a reformation_n which_o violent_o impugn_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o so_o much_o that_o luther_n affirm_v that_o a_o man_n can_v be_v save_v unless_o from_o his_o heart_n he_o hate_v the_o pope_n and_o papacy_n these_o thing_n true_o carry_v a_o very_a fair_a show_n and_o may_v deceive_v such_o as_o can_v or_o will_v not_o thorough_o look_v into_o they_o but_o whosoever_o know_v what_o gerson_n opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v and_o what_o luther_n have_v write_v against_o the_o papacy_n will_v soon_o perceive_v there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n between_o they_o or_o at_o least_o not_o in_o any_o essential_a and_o material_a point_n for_o gerson_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o free_a from_o danger_n of_o err_a and_o this_o he_o think_v to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o therefore_o will_v have_v detest_v all_o claim_n of_o infallible_a judgement_n and_o uncontrollable_a power_n of_o pope_n as_o much_o as_o luther_n do_v and_o will_v have_v accurse_v his_o word_n of_o blasphemy_n if_o once_o he_o shall_v have_v hear_v he_o say_v as_o we_o do_v and_o as_o before_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n he_o do_v all_o the_o world_n can_v judge_v i_o though_o i_o overturn_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o nature_n no_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o why_o do_v you_o so_o i_o only_o have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n and_o to_o void_v they_o again_o i_o have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o canon_n of_o all_o counsel_n as_o seem_v good_a unto_o i_o and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o dispose_v of_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n the_o assurance_n of_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o not_o err_v be_v not_o partly_o in_o i_o and_o partly_o in_o the_o council_n but_o whole_o in_o i_o whatsoever_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v consent_v on_o be_v of_o no_o force_n if_o i_o allow_v it_o not_o he_o will_v have_v say_v doubtless_o as_o i_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v hear_v he_o thus_o speak_v that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o take_v the_o foam_n of_o his_o impure_a mouth_n and_o froth_n of_o his_o word_n of_o blasphemy_n as_o infallible_a oracle_n this_o be_v that_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v that_o papacy_n which_o luther_n say_v every_o one_o that_o will_v be_v save_v must_v hate_v from_o his_o heart_n for_o otherwise_o if_o he_o will_v only_o claim_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n in_o his_o precinct_n a_o metropolitan_a in_o a_o province_n a_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o of_o patriarch_n the_o first_o and_o most_o honourable_a to_o who_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o resort_v in_o case_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o to_o the_o head_n and_o chief_a of_o their_o company_n to_o who_o it_o special_o pertain_v to_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o act_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o same_o and_o with_o the_o assistance_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o other_o by_o all_o due_a course_n to_o effect_v that_o which_o pertain_v thereunto_o without_o claim_v absolute_a and_o uncontrollable_a power_n infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o right_a to_o dispose_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o temporalty_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o the_o immediate_a sway_v of_o the_o jurisdiction_n thereof_o papatum_fw-la luther_n himself_o profess_v he_o will_v never_o open_v his_o mouth_n against_o he_o this_o kind_n of_o primacy_n the_o ult._n grecian_n likewise_o profess_v they_o will_v be_v content_a to_o yield_v unto_o he_o if_o other_o difference_n between_o they_o may_v be_v compose_v romano_n cassander_n say_v he_o be_v persuade_v there_o have_v never_o be_v any_o controversy_n about_o the_o pope_n power_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o abuse_v their_o authority_n in_o a_o lordly_a and_o overrule_a manner_n and_o through_o covetousness_n and_o ambition_n stretch_v it_o beyond_o the_o bound_n and_o
that_o they_o be_v not_o believe_v by_o the_o church_n or_o they_o shall_v be_v show_v he_o in_o those_o epistle_n wherefore_o let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o have_v more_o to_o say_v one_o of_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n he_o say_v be_v lose_v namely_o that_o which_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o laodicean_n in_o which_o there_o may_v be_v something_o necessary_o to_o 89._o be_v believe_v that_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o other_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o want_n &_o imperfection_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o true_o be_v a_o very_a idle_a and_o and_o silly_a objection_n for_o though_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a epistle_n to_o the_o laodicean_n carry_v about_o and_o read_v by_o some_o in_o ancient_a time_n yet_o as_o hierome_n testify_v it_o be_v explode_v by_o all_o and_o 12._o chrysostome_n and_o 13._o theodoret_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o paul_n never_o write_v any_o epistle_n to_o the_o laodicean_n but_o that_o the_o epistle_n he_o paulo_n speak_v of_o be_v write_v from_o laodicea_n or_o by_o the_o laodicean_n to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n among_o themselves_o or_o among_o the_o colossian_n by_o who_o he_o will_v have_v it_o read_v and_o 94._o cardinal_n baronius_n himself_o approve_v their_o opinion_n rather_o than_o the_o other_o that_o which_o he_o have_v of_o my_o admit_v tradition_n i_o will_v answer_v when_o i_o come_v to_o examine_v his_o next_o section_n §._o 8._o in_o his_o next_o section_n he_o have_v these_o word_n barlow_n and_o field_n two_o famous_a english_a protestant_n admit_v certain_a apostolical_a tradition_n and_o far_o he_o add_v that_o i_o allow_v of_o certain_a rule_n for_o the_o discern_a of_o apostolic_a tradition_n from_o such_o as_o be_v not_o such_o whereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o we_o admit_v sundry_a kind_n of_o tradition_n and_o yet_o deny_v that_o any_o thing_n concern_v faith_n or_o the_o necessary_a direction_n and_o information_n of_o man_n manner_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o receive_v that_o be_v not_o write_v for_o we_o say_v nothing_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n but_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n thing_n in_o some_o sort_n therein_o contain_v and_o thence_o deduce_v and_o certain_a dispensable_a observation_n not_o at_o all_o or_o hardly_o to_o be_v discern_v from_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n neither_o be_v it_o new_a or_o strange_a that_o we_o shall_v admit_v some_o kind_n of_o tradition_n for_o 4._o kemnitiu●…_n acknowledge_v all_o those_o kind_n that_o i_o mention_v which_o will_v no_o way_n help_v the_o papist_n for_o the_o question_n between_o they_o &_o we_o be_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o tradition_n or_o not_o for_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n but_o it_o be_v ●…upposed_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n teach_v immediate_o by_o christ_n his_o son_n ●…ded_v certain_a book_n to_o posterity_n and_o agree_v on_o which_o those_o book_n be_v wh●…her_o they_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o practise_v by_o christian_a ●…en_n for_o the_o attain_v of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o salvation_n we_o say_v they_o do_v they_o deny_v it_o yet_o will_v the_o treatiser_n prove_v from_o hence_o contrary_a to_o my_o assertion_n that_o according_a to_o my_o own_o ground_n tradition_n be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o my_o faith_n for_o if_o protestant_n receive_v the_o number_n name_n of_o the_o author_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o part_n of_o book_n divine_a and_o canonical_a as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n as_o i_o say_v they_o do_v and_o if_o without_o tradition_n we_o can_v know_v such_o divine_a book_n he_o think_v it_o consequent_a that_o tradition_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o such_o consequence_n as_o he_o imagine_v for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o require_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o necessary_a mea●…s_n whereby_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o and_o make_v know_v &_o another_o to_o make_v the_o same_o tradition_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n see_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o treatiser_n himself_o every_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o say_v build_v upon_o scripture_n without_o which_o we_o can_v know_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n from_o such_o as_o be_v not_o of_o that_o rank_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o he_o distinguish_v the_o gro●…d_n of_o our_o faith_n &_o seqq_fw-la reason_n of_o our_o believe_v from_o the_o condition_n require_v to_o the_o produce_v of_o such_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n deny_v the_o church_n propose_v of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o yet_o require_v it_o as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n without_o which_o ordinary_o man_n can_v believe_v so_o that_o though_o we_o know_v the_o name_n of_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o tradition_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o book_n nor_o no_o more_o part_n of_o book_n of_o this_o kind_n leave_v to_o posterity_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o such_o as_o the_o church_n deliver_v to_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o consequent_a that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n of_o our_o persuasion_n that_o the_o book_n deliver_v to_o we_o and_o the_o part_n thereof_o be_v canonical_a but_o tradition_n for_o the_o evidence_n of_o divine_a power_n and_o majesty_n show_v itself_o in_o they_o more_o than_o in_o all_o humane_a componsition_n whatsoever_o prove_v they_o to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n breathe_v in_o they_o nothing_o but_o heavenly_a grace_n the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n say_v nepotem_fw-la picus_n mirandula_n be_v rude_a and_o plain_a but_o full_a of_o life_n and_o soul_n they_o have_v their_o sting_n they_o pierce_v and_o enter_v in_o even_o to_o the_o most_o secret_a spirit_n and_o strange_o transform_v he_o that_o with_o due_a respect_n read_v they_o and_o meditate_v on_o they_o and_o beside_o there_o be_v sundry_a divine_a and_o convince_a reason_n that_o the_o sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o these_o book_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o heavenly_a truth_n and_o be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o we_o natural_o understand_v reveal_v truth_n so_o that_o the_o treatiser_n do_v great_o forget_v himself_o when_o he_o pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v false_a that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n win_v credit_n of_o 96._o themselves_o and_o yield_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o man_n of_o their_o divine_a truth_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v of_o tradition_n for_o where_o he_o say_v i_o affirm_v that_o without_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n he_o show_v himself_o to_o care_v little_a whether_o that_o he_o write_v be_v true_a or_o false_a for_o i_o no_o where_o have_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o where_o he_o say_v i_o affirm_v that_o papist_n make_v tradition_n ecclesiastical_a equal_a with_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o my_o ordinary_a untruth_n he_o deserve_v a_o sharp_a censure_n for_o if_o the_o reader_n be_v please_v to_o peruse_v the_o place_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o i_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n himself_o can_v possible_o dislike_v for_o deliver_v the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n 20._o touch_v tradition_n their_o diverse_a kind_n and_o the_o credit_n that_o be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o i_o show_v that_o they_o make_v divine_a tradition_n equal_a with_o the_o word_n precept_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n leave_v unto_o we_o in_o writing_n apostolical_a with_o the_o write_a precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ecclesiastical_a with_o the_o write_a precept_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o do_v if_o they_o can_v prove_v any_o such_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v this_o to_o say_v that_o papist_n make_v ecclesiastical_a tradition_n equal_a with_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v this_o one_o of_o my_o ordinary_a untruth_n or_o rather_o be_v not_o this_o a_o betray_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a impudence_n in_o he_o that_o so_o say_v sure_o i_o fear_v the_o reader_n will_v have_v a_o very_a ill_a conceit_n of_o he_o upon_o the_o 96._o discern_a of_o this_o his_o bad_a deal_n yet_o he_o go_v forward_o charge_v i_o that_o i_o make_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n to_o be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n whereas_o yet_o he_o know_v right_a well_o that_o howsoever_o i_o grant_v it_o may_v be_v name_v a_o tradition_n in_o that_o there_o be_v no_o express_a precept_n or_o
the_o see_v of_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v be_v before_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o order_n and_o honour_n neither_o do_v martian_a the_o emperor_n as_o the_o treatiser_n most_o untrue_o avouch_v void_a the_o canon_n of_o these_o counsel_n which_o in_o this_o sort_n be_v confirm_v afterward_o by_o justinian_n wherefore_o see_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o almost_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n in_o diverse_a general_n counsel_n fear_v not_o to_o make_v another_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n peer_n i_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v easy_o discern_v that_o i_o have_v not_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n nor_o fall_v into_o any_o unseemly_a scoff_a and_o rail_v vain_a as_o the_o treatiser_n charge_v m●…_n when_o i_o tax_v the_o antichristian_a and_o lucifer-like_a pride_n of_o the_o romish_a antichrist_n who_o notwithstanding_a the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n seek_v to_o subject_a all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o himself_o and_o pronounce_v they_o all_o to_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n that_o bow_n not_o down_o before_o he_o as_o vice-god_n and_o supreme_a commander_n on_o earth_n but_o it_o seem_v he_o have_v a_o great_a desire_n at_o the_o least_o to_o seem_v to_o say_v something_o against_o me._n for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o so_o shameless_o belie_v i_o as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v derive_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o 1●…9_n pope_n superiority_n from_o phocas_n whereas_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o he_o i_o have_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o contrary_n for_o i_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n be_v set_v in_o degree_n of_o honour_n next_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o before_o the_o other_o two_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n thereby_o confess_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o first_o place_n at_o that_o time_n which_o when_o the_o constantinopolitan_a bishop_n seek_v to_o have_v phocas_n so_o conclude_v matter_n between_o these_o two_o bishop_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o constantinople_n the_o second_o so_o that_o the_o praeeminence_n &_o chiefty_a which_o the_o pope_n claim_v lawful_o be_v ancient_a and_o not_o derive_v from_o phocas_n howsoever_o he_o may_v and_o happy_o do_v enlarge_v and_o extend_v it_o far_o than_o be_v fit_a give_v he_o a_o kind_n of_o universality_n of_o jurisdiction_n §._o 11._o from_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o treatiser_n pass_v to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o affirm_v that_o his_o decree_n though_o he_o define_v without_o a_o general_n 1●…9_n council_n be_v that_o firm_a rock_n and_o sure_a ground_n upon_o which_o our_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v build_v and_o that_o a_o man_n may_v well_o admit_v his_o definition_n as_o a_o ground_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n and_o prudent_o build_v a_o act_n of_o such_o supernatural_a faith_n upon_o it_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o place_n confess_v it_o be_v not_o yet_o authentical_o define_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o sort_n can_v err_v which_o thing_n also_o 2._o bellarmine_n and_o 4._o stapleton_n acknowledge_v profess_v express_o that_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o define_v without_o a_o general_n council_n in_o which_o passage_n there_o be_v as_o i_o suppose_v a_o most_o gross_a contradiction_n for_o how_o can_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n be_v to_o they_o a_o rock_n to_o build_v a_o act_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n upon_o who_o neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v that_o his_o judgement_n be_v infallible_a but_o think_v so_o only_o can_v a_o man_n certain_o and_o undoubted_o build_v his_o persuasion_n of_o any_o thing_n upon_o his_o say_n who_o he_o neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n wherefore_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o point_n first_o the_o treatiser_n say_v though_o the_o church_n have_v not_o authentical_o define_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v yet_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o argument_n bring_v to_o prove_v it_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o there_o be_v so_o many_o that_o think_v so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v very_o well_o admit_v his_o definition_n to_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o faith_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n may_v build_v his_o faith_n upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o argument_n and_o reason_n without_o expect_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o one_o and_o discern_v of_o the_o force_n and_o validity_n of_o the_o other_o ●_o whereas_o elsewhere_o he_o profess_v that_o without_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o present_a church_n the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o work_n of_o antiquity_n yield_v no_o certain_a 56._o and_o divine_a argument_n second_o he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o deny_v the_o suppose_a infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o make_v that_o rock_n to_o be_v only_o the_o consent_a judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o other_o bishop_n in_o a_o general_n council_n contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o almost_o all_o learned_a &_o pious_a man_n as_o he_o tell_v we_o himself_o who_o think_v that_o that_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o assurance_n of_o truth_n upon_o which_o our_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v build_v be_v not_o partly_o in_o the_o pope_n and_o partly_o in_o other_o bishop_n but_o altogether_o in_o the_o pope_n thus_o seek_v to_o avoid_v one_o contradiction_n he_o run_v into_o many_o the_o second_o part._n §._o 1._o have_v survey_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o treatise_n and_o examine_v such_o objection_n as_o the_o author_n of_o it_o make_v against_o i_o i_o will_v pass_v to_o the_o second_o wherein_o first_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v out_o of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v that_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o general_n 35._o counsel_n may_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n suppress_v they_o that_o gainsay_v such_o interpretation_n as_o they_o consent_v upon_o subject_v they_o to_o excommunication_n &_o censure_n of_o like_a nature_n that_o according_a to_o the_o providence_n and_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n general_n counsel_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o such_o matter_n for_o that_o otherwise_o man_n may_v be_v force_v according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n to_o obey_v general_n counsel_n err_v &_o propound_v false_a doctrine_n which_o be_v a_o very_a silly_a kind_n of_o reason_v for_o in_o the_o very_a same_o sort_n a_o man_n may_v prove_v that_o particular_a bishop_n be_v free_a from_o err_v in_o their_o proceed_n &_o that_o they_o can_v impose_v &_o prescribe_v nothing_o unjust_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n for_o that_o otherwise_o man_n may_v be_v force_v and_o that_o according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n to_o obey_v such_o bishop_n err_v in_o their_o proceed_n and_o command_v unjust_a thing_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v who_o may_v abuse_v the_o same_o and_o that_o sometime_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o please_v unto_o god_n by_o refuse_v to_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o abuse_v the_o same_o to_o run_v into_o the_o uttermost_a extremity_n of_o their_o censure_n yea_o 6._o s._n augustine_n pronounce_v that_o the_o patient_a endure_v of_o wrong_n in_o this_o kind_n shall_v be_v high_o reward_v by_o almighty_a god_n second_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n labour_v to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n contemn_v &_o reject_v the_o father_n &_o to_o that_o purpose_n wrest_v some_o say_n of_o doctor_n humphrey_n and_o other_o 40._o he_o object_v that_o i_o haply_o may_v seem_v to_o some_o one_o that_o do_v not_o thorough_o look_v into_o my_o word_n to_o approve_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o any_o catholic_a but_o say_v that_o in_o truth_n i_o do_v not_o for_o proof_n whereof_o he_o set_v down_o what_o i_o have_v write_v touch_v this_o point_n namely_o first_o that_o we_o must_v receive_v as_o true_a whatsoever_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o all_o the_o saint_n with_o one_o consent_n which_o have_v leave_v their_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n in_o writing_n it_o not_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o shall_v all_o have_v write_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v general_o receive_v in_o their_o time_n and_o touch_v the_o very_a life_n of_o christian_a faith_n second_o whatsoever_o the_o most_o famous_a have_v constant_o and_o uniform_o deliver_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n no_o man_n contradict_v they_o though_o many_o be_v find_v to_o have_v say_v nothing_o of_o
faith_n and_o religion_n his_o meaning_n it_o seem_v be_v that_o all_o protestant_n acknowledge_v puritan_n to_o be_v of_o one_o church_n with_o they_o be_v puritan_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v all_o to_o know_v that_o howsoever_o he_o make_v show_v of_o blame_v puritan_n only_o or_o principal_o yet_o in_o truth_n he_o equal_o condemn_v all_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o do_v but_o dissemble_v or_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o but_o do_v all_o these_o protestant_a writer_n name_v by_o he_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o material_a difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n sure_o no._n for_o touch_v myself_o i_o never_o write_v any_o such_o thing_n neither_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o he_o nor_o any_o where_o else_o so_o that_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o manifest_a and_o shameless_a untruth_n but_o i_o do_v the_o more_o willing_o pardon_v he_o this_o fault_n for_o that_o it_o seem_v he_o do_v not_o consider_v what_o he_o write_v for_o in_o the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v take_v the_o proof_n of_o his_o catholic_a religion_n and_o recusancy_n only_o from_o the_o write_n of_o such_o protestant_a divine_n as_o have_v be_v publish_v since_o the_o reign_n of_o his_o majesty_n over_o this_o kingdom_n for_o that_o as_o he_o say_v they_o often_o change_v their_o opinion_n at_o the_o least_o at_o the_o come_n of_o every_o new_a prince_n and_o yet_o page_n 30._o he_o cit_v the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n 1●…86_n book_n write_v many_o year_n ago_o and_o doctor_n covell_n his_o book_n in_o defence_n of_o master_n hooker_n as_o often_o as_o any_o other_o which_o yet_o be_v write_v in_o her_o late_a majesty_n time_n but_o what_o if_o i_o have_v write_v that_o howsoever_o there_o be_v some_o material_a difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n as_o it_o please_v he_o to_o style_v they_o yet_o not_o so_o essential_a or_o substantial_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v of_o one_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n what_o absurdity_n will_v have_v follow_v will_v it_o be_v consequent_a from_o hence_o as_o he_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o material_a with_o we_o whether_o man_n be_v of_o a_o true_a or_o false_a religion_n of_o any_o or_o none_o at_o all_o have_v there_o not_o be_v nay_o be_v there_o not_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o papist_n who_o yet_o will_v be_v angry_a if_o they_o be_v not_o esteem_v to_o be_v all_o of_o one_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n do_v not_o paschae_fw-la pope_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v not_o see_v god_n till_o the_o general_a resurrection_n and_o do_v not_o the_o french_a king_n that_o then_o be_v with_o the_o whole_a university_n of_o paris_n condemn_v the_o same_o opinion_n as_o heretical_a with_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n do_v not_o ambros._n ambrose_n catharinus_n teach_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v certain_a with_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o soto_n the_o contrary_a do_v not_o iustificat_fw-la pighius_fw-la iustificatione_n contarenus_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v antididagma_n coloniense_n defend_v imputative_a justice_n and_o other_o papist_n reject_v it_o do_v not_o some_o among_o they_o teach_v the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n do_v not_o condigno_fw-la other_o move_v with_o a_o sober_a moderation_n think_v there_o be_v no_o such_o merit_n do_v not_o some_o think_v the_o pope_n be_v universal_a bishop_n 13._o other_o that_o he_o be_v not_o but_o prime_a bishop_n only_o 22._o do_v not_o some_o teach_v that_o all_o bishop_n receive_v their_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n other_o the_o contrary_n 4._o do_v not_o some_o think_v the_o pope_n may_v papal_o err_v and_o other_o that_o he_o can_v 1._o do_v not_o some_o of_o they_o think_v he_o be_v temporal_a lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o other_o the_o contrary_a do_v not_o so_o 〈◊〉_d they_o think_v he_o may_v depose_v prince_n and_o 1088._o other_o that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v there_o not_o a_o very_a material_a point_n of_o difference_n among_o papist_n touch_v predestination_n let_v they_o show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v so_o many_o and_o material_a difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n and_o yet_o these_o be_v all_o of_o one_o church_n in_o their_o judgement_n yea_o chron_n pope_n stephen_n who_o reverse_a all_o the_o act_n of_o formosus_fw-la his_o predecessor_n pronounce_v the_o ordination_n of_o all_o those_o to_o be_v void_a who_o he_o have_v ordain_v bring_v his_o dead_a body_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n into_o the_o council_n strip_v it_o out_o of_o the_o papal_a vesture_n put_v upon_o it_o a_o lay_v habit_n and_o cut_v off_o two_o finger_n of_o his_o right_a hand_n cast_v it_o into_o tiber_n pope_n john_n his_o successor_n who_o call_v a_o council_n of_o 74._o bishop_n to_o confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o formosus_fw-la the_o archishops_a of_o france_n and_o the_o king_n be_v present_a at_o ravenna_n &_o burn_v the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n which_o stephen_n have_v call_v to_o condemn_v formosus_fw-la and_o sergius_n who_o again_o condemn_v formosus_fw-la and_o pronounce_v all_o his_o ordination_n to_o be_v void_a reverse_v the_o act_n of_o pope_n john_n and_o his_o synod_n be_v all_o of_o one_o church_n of_o one_o communion_n faith_n and_o religion_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o strange_a when_o there_o be_v three_o anti-popes_n sit_v in_o diverse_a place_n accurse_v one_o another_o with_o all_o their_o adherent_n and_o that_o for_o many_o year_n yet_o still_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n of_o one_o communion_n faith_n and_o religion_n yet_o may_v not_o we_o infer_v from_o hence_o against_o they_o as_o they_o do_v against_o we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o material_a with_o they_o whether_o man_n be_v of_o a_o true_a or_o false_a religion_n of_o any_o or_o none_o at_o all_o sure_o they_o be_v more_o privilege_v than_o other_o man_n for_o blackwell_n some_o of_o they_o may_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n &_o disclaim_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o right_a to_o intermeddle_v with_o prince_n state_n and_o other_o refuse_v it_o and_o yet_o still_o be_v catholic_a brethren_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o church_n yea_o a_o d●…y_n priest_n may_v like_v of_o this_o oath_n and_o persuade_v other_o to_o take_v it_o and_o afterward_o go_v over_o the_o sea_n and_o alter_v his_o judgement_n and_o return_v choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v death_n then_o to_o take_v it_o again_o yet_o no_o man_n must_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o but_o if_o a_o minister_n subscribe_v and_o afterward_o upon_o ill_a advice_n refuse_v to_o do_v the_o same_o again_o than_o all_o the_o course_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v such_o that_o by_o no_o outward_a sign_n communion_n profession_n protestation_n or_o subscription_n a_o man_n can_v tell_v who_o be_v of_o what_o religion_n among_o us._n but_o let_v we_o pass_v from_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o book_n itself_o chap._n i._n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n which_o be_v of_o the_o supreme_a and_o most_o preeminent_a authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v to_o find_v it_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o it_o he_o have_v these_o word_n doctor_n field_n a_o late_a protestant_a writer_n begin_v his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n before_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o manner_n there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n more_o necessary_a in_o these_o day_n of_o so_o many_o intricate_a controversy_n of_o religion_n then_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o household_n of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o we_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n and_o after_o some_o other_o thing_n cite_v out_o of_o other_o he_o add_v the_o join_n with_o the_o true_a church_n be_v so_o needful_a a_o thing_n that_o d._n field_n conclude_v there_o be_v no_o salvation_n remission_n of_o sin_n or_o hope_v of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o what_o purpose_n this_o allegation_n serve_v i_o can_v conceive_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o any_o of_o these_o speech_n of_o i_o that_o ever_o any_o protestant_n doubt_v of_o or_o from_o which_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v conclude_v against_o we_o or_o for_o the_o papist_n 4_o the_o church_n of_o god_n say_v master_n caluine_n be_v name_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o faithful_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o entrance_n into_o eternal_a life_n unless_o she_o conceive_v we_o in_o her_o womb_n unless_o she_o
truth_n who_o communion_n we_o must_v embrace_v follow_v her_o direction_n rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n live_v and_o die_v therein_o to_o have_v eternal_a life_n man_n may_v here_o by_o my_o censure_n and_o advice_n confine_v themselves_o and_o wade_v no_o further_o in_o so_o many_o intricate_a controversy_n of_o religion_n the_o second_o that_o i_o be_o or_o must_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o those_o book_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v for_o canonical_a be_v indeed_o canonical_a for_o answer_v to_o the_o former_a of_o these_o allegation_n first_o i_o profess_v before_o god_n man_n and_o angel_n that_o i_o neither_o do_v nor_o ever_o do_v think_v the_o present_a roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n who_o communion_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o embrace_v but_o a_o heretical_a church_n with_o which_o we_o may_v not_o communicate_v second_o i_o profess_v in_o like_a sort_n that_o though_o i_o do_v and_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v before_o luther_n time_n to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o best_a and_o indeed_o the_o principal_a part_n thereof_o which_o hold_v a_o save_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o christ_n howsoever_o many_o and_o they_o great_o prevail_v err_v damnable_o yet_o i_o never_o think_v it_o to_o be_v that_o church_n in_o who_o judgement_n we_o be_v to_o rest_v without_o any_o far_a doubt_n or_o question_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v safe_a to_o follow_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o guide_n and_o ruler_n of_o it_o but_o the_o church_n in_o who_o judgement_n we_o must_v absolute_o and_o final_o rest_n be_v that_o whole_a and_o entire_a society_n of_o holy_a one_o which_o beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o fill_v the_o world_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n to_o refuse_v the_o judgement_n of_o this_o church_n or_o to_o resist_v against_o any_o thing_n deliver_v ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la in_o all_o place_n at_o all_o time_n by_o all_o christian_a pastor_n and_o people_n not_o note_v for_o heresy_n or_o singularity_n be_v extreme_a folly_n and_o madness_n so_o that_o as_o i_o note_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o chapter_n out_o of_o waldensis_n it_o be_v not_o any_o particular_a church_n as_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n nor_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n but_o the_o universal_a church_n not_o gather_v together_o in_o a_o general_a council_n which_o have_v sometime_o err_v but_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n disperse_v through_o the_o world_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n unto_o our_o time_n which_o do_v undoubted_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o jesus_n and_o in_o who_o judgement_n we_o must_v absolute_o rest_v without_o any_o far_a question_n o●…_n doubt_v and_o hereunto_o agree_v t_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n prescribe_v this_o course_n to_o be_v follow_v in_o novitat_fw-la matter_n question_v touch_v faith_n and_o religion_n if_o error_n creep_v into_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v look_v unto_o other_o that_o still_o be_v sound_n and_o pure_a if_o into_o almost_o the_o whole_a present_a church_n we_o must_v look_v up_o high_o into_o former_a time_n and_o the_o resolution_n of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n thus_o i_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v easy_o perceive_v that_o this_o first_o allegation_n be_v frivolous_a for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n who_o communion_n we_o must_v embrace_v nor_o that_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o best_a be_v that_o church_n in_o the_o judgement_n whereof_o we_o be_v absolute_o to_o rest_v and_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n confine_v himself_o here_o without_o far_o wade_v into_o particular_a controversy_n but_o let_v every_o man_n as_o he_o tender_v the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n look_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o church_n also_o and_o to_o the_o resolution_n of_o former_a time_n now_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o his_o second_o allegation_n concern_v canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o scripture_n his_o word_n be_v the_o protestant_a surveyor_n of_o the_o communion-booke_n affirm_v plain_o that_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n must_v approve_v for_o canonical_a all_o those_o book_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v and_o doctor_n field_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n or_o must_v be_v for_o thus_o he_o write_v the_o ancient_a and_o true-beleeving_a jew_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n especial_o such_o as_o live_v in_o greece_n and_o nation_n out_o of_o jury_n common_o call_v hellenist_n receive_v those_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n it_o be_v well_o he_o say_v not_o absolute_o that_o i_o be_o of_o that_o opinion_n but_o that_o i_o be_o or_o must_v be_v for_o he_o be_v well_o assure_v i_o be_o not_o but_o he_o know_v how_o to_o force_v i_o to_o be_v whether_o i_o will_v or_o not_o by_o false_o report_v my_o word_n and_o make_v i_o say_v that_o i_o never_o think_v nor_o say_v for_o do_v i_o any_o where_o say_v the_o ancient_a and_o true_a ●…eving_v jew_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n receive_v those_o book_n for_o canonical_a especial_o such_o as_o be_v disperse_v among_o the_o gentile_n no_o sure_o but_o the_o contrary_a namely_o that_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v receive_v those_o only_a as_o divine_a and_o canonical_a which_o we_o do_v and_o not_o those_o other_o in_o question_n i_o be_o very_o persuade_v these_o man_n think_v lie_v to_o be_v no_o sin_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o brag_v so_o much_o of_o their_o good_a work_n and_o trust_v to_o the_o merit_n thereof_o they_o will_v witting_o run_v so_o often_o into_o such_o a_o sin_n as_o we_o silly_a man_n think_v it_o to_o be_v and_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n assure_v we_o it_o be_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o shut_v man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o revelation_n 15._o without_o shall_v be_v dog_n and_o enchanter_n and_o whore-monger_n and_o murderer_n &_o idolater_n and_o whosoever_o love_v or_o make_v lie_n but_o let_v we_o see_v if_o he_o deal_v not_o better_o in_o that_o which_o follow_v surely_n no_o he_o be_v constant_a and_o ever_o like_o himself_o for_o he_o say_v doctor_n field_n write_v thus_o the_o ancient_a and_o true-beleeving_a jew_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n especial_o such_o as_o live_v in_o greece_n and_o nation_n out_o of_o jury_n common_o call_v hellenist_n receive_v those_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o jew_n deliver_v a_o double_a canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n sure_o this_o be_v not_o to_o use_v but_o to_o abuse_v my_o word_n for_o i_o be_v not_o so_o senseless_a as_o to_o say_v the_o ancient_a and_o true-beleeving_a jew_n receive_v the_o book_n in_o question_n for_o canonical_a and_o that_o thence_o it_o come_v that_o they_o deliver_v a_o double_a canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o if_o the_o jew_n general_o have_v receive_v all_o these_o book_n for_o canonical_a but_o especial_o the_o hellenist_n then_o they_o can_v not_o have_v deliver_v a_o double_a canon_n of_o scripture_n but_o one_o only_a wherefore_o my_o word_n be_v not_o as_o he_o report_v they_o but_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o 22_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o add_v 380._o these_o only_o do_v the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n receive_v as_o divine_a &_o canonical_a and_o that_o other_o book_n be_v add_v unto_o these_o who_o authority_n not_o be_v certain_a and_o know_v be_v name_v apocryphal_a fèll_v out_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o jew_n in_o their_o latter_a time_n before_o and_o at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o proper_o name_v hebrew_n commorant_n at_o jerusalem_n &_o in_o the_o holy_a land_n other_o name_v hellenist_n jew_n of_o the_o dispersion_n mingle_v with_o the_o grecian_n these_o have_v write_v sundry_a book_n in_o greek_a which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o together_o with_o other_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o they_o have_v of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n but_o the_o hebrew_n receive_v only_a the_o 22_o book_n before_o mention_v hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o jew_n deliver_v a_o double_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n the_o one_o pure_a indubitate_a &_o divine_a which_o be_v the_o hebrew_n canon_n the_o other_o in_o greek_a enrich_v with_o or_o rather_o adulterate_v by_o the_o addition_n of_o certain_a other_o book_n write_v in_o those_o day_n when_o god_n raise_v up_o no_o more_o prophet_n among_o his_o people_n so_o that_o the_o
the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n without_o any_o breach_n of_o the_o canon_n allege_v i_o have_v show_v my_o opinion_n in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o see_v the_o author_n of_o these_o proof_n proceed_v no_o far_o in_o allege_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v write_v i_o will_v here_o leave_v he_o not_o doubt_v but_o other_o who_o he_o have_v wrong_v will_v make_v he_o know_v he_o have_v deal_v no_o better_a with_o they_o than_o he_o have_v with_o i_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o plausible_a conclusion_n he_o make_v in_o the_o end_n of_o itself_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n the_o premise_n upon_o which_o it_o shall_v stay_v itself_o be_v take_v away_o for_o we_o neither_o acknowledge_v thrt_a papist_n hold_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n the_o universality_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n to_o dispose_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n believe_v freewill_n to_o perform_v &_o do_v the_o action_n of_o virtue_n without_o assistance_n of_o special_a grace_n perfection_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n satisfaction_n merit_n of_o condignity_n propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o like_a can_v ever_o be_v save_v so_o live_v &_o die_v nor_o that_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n nor_o that_o the_o preeminence_n they_o now_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v either_o claim_v or_o practise_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o s._n peter_n to_o these_o our_o day_n as_o this_o nameless_a and_o shameless_a author_n say_v we_o do_v nor_o that_o all_o the_o book_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o receive_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v deliver_v for_o such_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o the_o true_a and_o best_a translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o the_o lawful_a supreme_a bind_a exposition_n of_o they_o together_o with_o apostolical_a tradition_n general_a counsel_n or_o primitive_a father_n give_v any_o testimony_n that_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v that_o company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o household_n of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v so_o diligent_o to_o be_v seek_v after_o who_o communion_n we_o must_v embrace_v who_o direction_n we_o must_v follow_v and_o in_o who_o judgement_n we_o must_v rest_v but_o contrariwise_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v all_o these_o do_v witness_n against_o she_o that_o she_o be_v a_o err_a heretical_a and_o apostatical_a church_n that_o she_o have_v forsake_v her_o first_o faith_n depart_v from_o her_o primitive_a sincerity_n plunge_v those_o that_o adhere_v unto_o she_o into_o many_o gross_a and_o damnable_a error_n and_o defile_v herself_o with_o intolerable_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n so_o that_o as_o well_o in_o respect_n of_o her_o error_n in_o faith_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n in_o divine_a worship_n as_o of_o her_o slanderous_a treacherous_a bloody_a and_o most_o horrible_a &_o hellish_a practice_n to_o overthrow_v and_o destrow_v all_o that_o do_v but_o open_v their_o mouth_n against_o her_o abomination_n we_o may_v just_o account_v she_o to_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n the_o faction_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o babylon_n out_o of_o which_o we_o must_v fly_v unless_o we_o will_v be_v partaker_n of_o her_o plague_n finis_fw-la finis_fw-la exod._n 3._o 14._o and_o 6._o 3._o 3._o reve._n 1._o 8._o 8._o revel_v 5._o 1●…_n &_o 4._o 11._o 11._o gasper_n contarenus_n lib._n 7._o primae_fw-la philosophiae_fw-la philosophiae_fw-la quis_fw-la fecisti_fw-la nos_fw-la ●…d_fw-la te_fw-la &_o inquietum_fw-la est_fw-la cor_fw-la nostrum_fw-la donec_fw-la requiescat_fw-la in_o te_fw-la aug._n lib._n 1._o confess_v in_o ●…tio_fw-la ●…tio_fw-la contarenus_n lib._n de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la virtus_fw-la naturae_fw-la ordinat_fw-la act●…●…um_fw-la in_o bonum_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la supra_fw-la naturam_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o illum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la dispositione_n nova_fw-la far_o ad●…ocum_fw-la actus_fw-la rationali●…_n creaturae_fw-la meritorius_fw-la oportet_fw-la quòd_fw-la o●…dmetur_fw-la ad_fw-la bonum_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la supr●…_n ipsam_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la summum_fw-la bonum_fw-la &_o infinitum_fw-la quia_fw-la ergo_fw-la non_fw-la 〈◊〉_d possibilis_fw-la extensio_fw-la rational_n creaturae_fw-la supra_fw-la seipsam_fw-la ideo_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ei_fw-la possibile_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la ut_fw-la ordinet_fw-la suum_fw-la actum_fw-la sive_fw-la perveniat_fw-la in_o suum_fw-la finem_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la invetur_fw-la gratia_fw-la et_fw-la post_fw-la duplex_fw-la est_fw-la cognitio_fw-la de_fw-fr deo_fw-la una_fw-la per_fw-la effectus_fw-la su●…_n &_o haec_fw-la est_fw-la sine_fw-la gratia_fw-la alia_fw-la per_fw-la praesentiam_fw-la svi_fw-la apud_fw-la animam_fw-la &_o haec_fw-la est_fw-la pe●…_n g●…atiam_fw-la praesen●…_n autem_fw-la est_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la p●…sentat_fw-la seu_fw-la p●…sentemfacit_fw-la beatitudinem_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la in_fw-la habitu_fw-la tantum_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o par●…ulis_fw-la in_fw-la affectu_fw-la tantum_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o adultis_fw-la in_fw-la habitu_fw-la affectu_fw-la &_o intellectu_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o beatis_fw-la alex._n de_fw-fr h●…es_n part_n 3._o ●…61_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o 1._o oftendam_fw-la tibi_fw-la o●…e_fw-la bon●…_n exo._n 33._o 19_o 19_o joan_n picus_n heptapli_v l._n 7._o in_o pro●…mio_fw-la pro●…mio_fw-la john_n 6._o 44._o 44._o august_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 12._o c._n 8._o 8._o august_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 15._o 15._o jerem._n 8._o 4._o 4._o alex._n de_fw-fr hales_n part_n 3._o q._n 1._o memb_v 2._o 2._o damasc._n lib._n 2._o orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la cap._n 4._o 4._o 1._o tim._n 〈◊〉_d 21._o et_fw-la jude_n verse_n 6._o 6._o maior_fw-la libertas_fw-la est_fw-la necessaria_fw-la adversus_fw-la tot_fw-la &_o tantas_fw-la tentationes_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o paradiso_n non_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la dono_fw-la perseverantiae_fw-la munita_fw-la et_fw-la firmata_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la amoribus_fw-la terroribus_fw-la erroribus_fw-la suis_fw-la vincatur_fw-la hic_fw-la mundus_fw-la hoc_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la martyria_fw-la docuerunt_fw-la denique_fw-la ille_fw-la adam_n &_o terrente_fw-la nullo_n &_o insuper_fw-la contra_fw-la dei_fw-la terrentis_fw-la imperium_fw-la libero_fw-la usus_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la non_fw-la stetit_fw-la in_o tanta_fw-la felicitate_a in_o tanta_fw-la non_fw-la peccandi_fw-la facilitate_v isti_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la dico_fw-la terrente_fw-la mundo_fw-la sed_fw-la saeviente_fw-la ne_fw-la starent_fw-la steterunt_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la cum_fw-la videret_fw-la ille_fw-la bona_fw-la praesentia_fw-la quae_fw-la erat_fw-la relicturus_fw-la isti_fw-la futu●…a_fw-la quae_fw-la acceptuti_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la non_fw-la viderent_fw-la unde_fw-la illud_fw-la nisi_fw-la donante_fw-la illo_fw-la etc._n etc._n aug._n de_fw-fr correp_n &_o gratia_fw-la cap._n 12._o 12._o wisd._n 10._o 1._o 1._o gen._n 3._o 9_o 9_o gen._n 3._o 1_o 5._o 5._o gen._n 4._o 4._o 4._o gen._n 4._o 8._o 8._o gen._n 4._o 25._o 25._o gen._n 6._o 6._o gen._n 7._o 7._o gen._n 10._o 21._o 21._o hieron_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la evagrium_fw-la 1._o gen._n 9_o 26._o 26._o gen_n 12._o 1._o 1._o gen_n 15._o 5._o 5._o gen._n 12._o 3._o 3._o gen._n 17._o 9_o 9_o gen._n 15._o 4._o &_o 17._o &_o 21._o 2._o 3._o 3._o gen._n 25._o 23._o 23._o malac._n 1._o 2._o 3._o 3._o gen._n 32._o 28._o 〈◊〉_d gen._n 49._o 8._o 10_o 10_o rom._n 3._o 2._o 2._o rom._n 9_o 4._o 5._o 5._o luke_n 2._o 32._o 32._o philip._n 2._o 9_o 10_o 10_o nazianz._n orat_fw-la 4._o de_fw-la filio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d john_n 4._o 23._o 23._o mat._n 28._o 19_o 20._o 20._o luke_n 24._o 45._o 46._o 47._o 48._o 48._o act_n 1._o 4._o 4._o act_n 2._o 1._o 1._o catech._n trident_n in_o explicatione_n symboli_fw-la symboli_fw-la quimu●…_n proprie_fw-la dicatur_fw-la syn●…ga_fw-la jud●…corum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la verò_fw-la christianorum_fw-la quia_fw-la congregatio_fw-la magis_fw-la pec●…um_fw-la convocatio_fw-la magis_fw-la hominum_fw-la intelligi_fw-la solet_fw-la ta●…en_n &_o illam_fw-la dictam_fw-la invenimus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la fortassis_fw-la magis_fw-la convenit_fw-la dicere_fw-la salva_n no●…_n domine_fw-la noster_fw-la &_o congrega_fw-la no●…_n de_fw-la gentibus_fw-la ut_fw-la consite●…mur_fw-la nomini_fw-la sancto_fw-la tuo●…neque_fw-la dedignari_fw-la no●…_n oportet_fw-la imo_fw-la gratias_fw-la incffabiles_fw-la agere_fw-la quia_fw-la famous_a oves_fw-la 〈◊〉_d eius_fw-la quas_fw-la praevidebat_fw-la cum_fw-la dicere●…_n habeo_fw-la alius_fw-la over_o aug._n in_o psal._n 77._o 77._o synagoga_fw-la dicitur_fw-la populus_fw-la israel_n cum_fw-la utique_fw-la quamvis_fw-la vero_fw-la deo_fw-la mancip●…us_fw-la vider●…tur_fw-la pro_fw-la magnis_fw-la tamen_fw-la &_o sum●…is_fw-la bonis_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la car●…lia_fw-la 〈◊〉_d &_o temporalia_fw-la requir●…bat_fw-la aug._n in_o psal._n 8●…_n sed_fw-la in_o psal._n 72._o ostendit_fw-la ut●…que_fw-la multi_fw-la animadertentes_fw-la quae_fw-la promiserit_fw-la deus_fw-la populo_fw-la sito_fw-la ●…empe_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ●…sum_fw-la terren●…_n patriam_fw-la p●…_n &_o 〈◊〉_d ●…errenam_fw-la &_o non_fw-la considerantes_fw-la in_o his_o omnibus_fw-la figur●…_n esse_fw-la 〈◊〉_d intelligentes_fw-la quid_fw-la ibi_fw-la laterer_fw-la pa●…rent_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la deum_fw-la melius_fw-la quod_fw-la